Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n church_n congregation_n visible_a 3,462 5 9.1990 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A07781 A notable treatise of the church in vvhich are handled all the principall questions, that haue bene moued in our time concerning that matter. By Philip of Mornay, Lord of Plessis Marlyn, gentleman of Fraunce. And translated out of French into English by Io. Feilde.; Traicté de l'église. English Mornay, Philippe de, seigneur du Plessis-Marly, 1549-1623.; Fielde, John, d. 1588. 1579 (1579) STC 18159; ESTC S107520 167,479 400

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

they_o call_v her_o prince_n the_o prince_n of_o sodom_n 18.23_o and_o her_o people_n the_o people_n of_o gomorrhe_n to_o be_v short_a that_o they_o threaten_v she_o that_o god_n will_v remove_v his_o tabernacle_n from_o thence_o to_o other_o 2._o and_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o deceive_v for_o have_v neglect_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v worship_v antichrist_n in_o the_o church_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v very_o clear_a that_o the_o church_n be_v as_o the_o moon_n a_o body_n thick_a &_o cloudy_a which_o have_v no_o light_n but_o from_o christ_n the_o sun_n thereof_o by_o mean_n that_o she_o look_v towards_o he_o she_o be_v bright_a and_o clear_a and_o the_o more_o she_o turn_v away_o from_o he_o the_o less_o brightness_n she_o have_v &_o sometime_o she_o withdraw_v herself_o so_o far_o from_o he_o &_o so_o great_a a_o mass_n of_o earth_n set_v itself_o between_o they_o that_o she_o seem_v altogether_o eclipse_v hereof_o it_o be_v that_o of_o this_o universal_a church_n disperse_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o gather_v together_o into_o particular_a church_n of_o all_o the_o nation_n thereof_o we_o may_v see_v some_o utter_o root_v out_o by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n as_o the_o philippian_n colossian_n &_o many_o other_o of_o the_o east_n which_o be_v erect_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o other_o to_o be_v erect_v else_o where_o through_o the_o everlasting_a goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n some_o by_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n to_o be_v corrupt_v both_o in_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n as_o those_o of_o greece_n of_o egypt_n of_o africa_n etc_n etc_n other_o by_o the_o presumption_n of_o their_o leader_n have_v nothing_o leave_v sound_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v short_a some_o other_o go_v from_o heresy_n to_o infidelity_n as_o in_o the_o country_n where_o mahomet_n begin_v his_o sect_n which_o be_v altogether_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o first_o sin_n of_o man_n who_o of_o himself_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n to_o himself_o and_o be_v blind_v in_o his_o own_o love_n think_v to_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o guide_v himself_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n thus_o much_o in_o few_o word_n concern_v the_o part_n of_o this_o visible_a church_n now_o universal_a but_o let_v it_o suffice_v for_o this_o time_n that_o we_o resolve_v ourselves_o that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n of_o all_o those_o which_o make_v profession_n of_o christ_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o under_o she_o be_v comprehend_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n to_o which_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v to_o this_o universal_a church_n belong_v equal_o that_o of_o the_o same_o some_o be_v pure_a and_o some_o impure_a according_a as_o they_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o god_n to_o themselves_o to_o be_v short_a that_o the_o pure_a church_n be_v impure_a before_o god_n see_v he_o have_v not_o find_v purity_n in_o his_o angel_n save_v that_o he_o support_v they_o in_o mercy_n in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n our_o lord_n that_o of_o the_o visible_a &_o catholic_a church_n some_o part_n of_o it_o be_v pure_a and_o some_o impure_a and_o which_o be_v the_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n chap._n ii_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a visible_a church_n be_v the_o assembly_n of_o all_o those_o which_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n distinguish_v as_o we_o have_v say_v into_o many_o particular_a church_n all_o which_o do_v make_v but_o one_o body_n of_o all_o these_o particular_a as_o member_n and_o part_n of_o one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o body_n some_o be_v pure_a other_o some_o be_v impure_a some_o more_o &_o some_o less_o sound_n and_o some_o at_o this_o day_n be_v sick_a even_o unto_o death_n which_o in_o time_n past_a be_v more_o healthful_a according_a as_o all_o be_v compose_v of_o man_n and_o therefore_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v partaker_n with_o their_o fault_n those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o pure_a and_o sound_a church_n we_o call_v they_o sound_v and_o true_a church_n consent_v to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o name_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o ancient_a father_n have_v give_v they_o the_o other_o we_o call_v the_o err_a heretical_a or_o schismatical_a church_n according_a as_o they_o err_v either_o in_o faith_n or_o in_o charity_n against_o the_o square_a and_o right_a rule_n of_o christ_n or_o against_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o church_n either_o in_o the_o one_o or_o in_o the_o other_o notwithstanding_o every_o one_o in_o his_o degree_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v true_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v assembly_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o be_v not_o pure_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v serve_v god_n in_o christ_n only_o in_o purity_n and_o verity_n even_o like_a as_o a_o lie_a person_n be_v true_o a_o man_n albeit_o he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a man_n &_o a_o man_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v a_o man_n howsoever_o he_o be_v disfigure_v without_o and_o inward_o infect_v with_o leprosy_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n benumb_v of_o his_o member_n or_o else_o trouble_v in_o his_o sense_n that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o principal_a action_n of_o a_o man_n yea_o and_o of_o those_o thing_n also_o in_o outward_a appearance_n that_o make_v difference_n between_o a_o man_n &_o a_o beast_n i_o mean_v speech_n and_o reason_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o principal_o the_o latin_n they_o common_o call_v the_o pure_a church_n catholic_a by_o excellency_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o congregation_n of_o heretic_n but_o to_o speak_v proper_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a church_n how_o pure_a &_o sound_a soever_o it_o be_v that_o can_v be_v call_v universal_a and_o if_o we_o give_v they_o their_o name_n because_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o the_o self_n same_o reason_n it_o shall_v agree_v aswell_o to_o the_o most_o impure_a church_n themselves_o and_o in_o deed_n this_o word_n catholic_a be_v not_o put_v in_o our_o creed_n for_o to_o distinguish_v a_o pure_a church_n from_o a_o impure_a but_o to_o distinguish_v the_o jewish_a church_n in_o time_n past_o tie_v to_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o by_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o authorise_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n against_o the_o pretend_a prerogative_n of_o the_o jew_n cap._n against_o which_o s._n paul_n have_v write_v in_o the_o three_o first_o whole_a chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o to_o show_v that_o according_a to_o that_o that_o be_v foretell_v by_o all_o the_o prophet_n that_o all_o people_n be_v make_v one_o in_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a controversy_n that_o make_v great_a broil_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v deep_o way_n this_o thing_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v use_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n call_v the_o sound_n and_o true_a church_n catholic_a come_v of_o the_o reason_n they_o have_v against_o the_o schismatic_n as_o against_o the_o novatian_n donatist_n and_o other_o who_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o bind_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o themselves_o and_o shut_v out_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n beside_o as_o namely_o the_o donatist_n who_o tie_v it_o to_o a_o little_a corner_n of_o africa_n donatist_n under_o the_o colour_n that_o they_o presume_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v more_o holy_a than_o the_o rest_n against_o who_o to_o the_o end_n to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n they_o oppose_v the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n now_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o search_v out_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o this_o church_n which_o we_o call_v the_o true_a &_o pure_a church_n or_o if_o we_o like_v better_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o impure_a &_o erroneous_a church_n we_o have_v say_v already_o that_o god_n vouchsafe_v through_o his_o goodness_n to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o one_o sort_n of_o man_n will_v also_o that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o mother_n and_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o mother_n alone_o to_o bringforth_o child_n into_o the_o world_n but_o she_o be_v a_o true_a mother_n who_o also_o nourish_v they_o and_o care_v for_o they_o after_o she_o have_v bring_v they_o forth_o now_o through_o baptism_n we_o be_v avow_a to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o of_o child_n of_o wrath_n which_o we_o be_v we_o be_v through_o
as_o there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n nor_o charity_n nor_o christ_n so_o also_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o seek_v any_o salvation_n but_o in_o she_o and_o therefore_o if_o a_o man_n will_v speak_v proper_o we_o shall_v call_v the_o church_n a_o company_n only_o of_o those_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o everlasting_a life_n in_o all_o time_n &_o place_n which_o be_v to_o man_n invisible_a who_o can_v not_o enter_v so_o far_o as_o to_o know_v god_n will_n neither_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n himself_o but_o be_v only_o visible_a to_o god_n 2.19_o who_o know_v those_o that_o be_v his_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v &_o have_v seal_v they_o with_o his_o own_o seal_n notwithstanding_o forasmuch_o as_o charity_n have_v command_v we_o to_o presume_v particular_o of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v call_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o his_o elect_a &_o that_o as_o they_o be_v bodily_a there_o assemble_v together_o so_o also_o that_o they_o be_v there_o spiritual_o incorporate_v albeit_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n general_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o wicked_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o good_a the_o goat_n with_o the_o sheep_n the_o chaff_n with_o the_o grain_n &_o the_o tare_n with_o the_o good_a corn_n yet_o will_v we_o commit_v unto_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n &_o will_v content_v ourselves_o to_o search_v for_o the_o visible_a in_o his_o word_n into_o which_o all_o they_o must_v retire_v themselves_o in_o this_o world_n which_o will_v be_v gather_v into_o the_o invisible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v notwithstanding_o by_o the_o way_n we_o will_v note_v the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o these_o two_o the_o invisible_a church_n contain_v none_o but_o the_o good_a the_o visible_a church_n contain_v both_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a to_o wit_n that_o only_o the_o elect_v this_o all_o those_o indifferent_o which_o be_v bring_v into_o she_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n s._n augustine_n say_v of_o that_o psal._n that_o she_o take_v her_o beginning_n by_o abel_n and_o not_o by_o cain_n who_o be_v the_o elder_n and_o contrariwise_o of_o the_o other_o he_o say_v 16_o that_o the_o self_n same_o beget_v abel_n &_o enoch_n simon_n peter_n &_o all_o christian_n etc_n etc_n as_o one_o people_n have_v also_o beget_v cain_n and_o chamlet_n ishmael_n and_o esau_n and_o simon_n the_o sorcerer_n with_o his_o confederate_n the_o invisible_a church_n be_v partly_o consider_v in_o heaven_n &_o partly_o in_o earth_n comprehend_v aswell_o those_o which_o triumph_n already_o with_o their_o head_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n as_o those_o which_o yet_o fight_v here_o beneath_o in_o the_o earth_n for_o his_o name_n against_o the_o world_n &_o against_o themselves_o &_o which_o shall_v fight_v in_o the_o same_o church_n after_o we_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v consider_v proper_o to_o consist_v in_o they_o who_o not_o only_o fight_v here_o in_o earth_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o well_o those_o that_o fight_n under_o his_o name_n with_o false_a mark_n &_o standard_n &_o ensign_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o be_v consider_v even_o from_o the_o first_o faithful_a unto_o the_o last_o bring_v all_o the_o state_n &_o age_n of_o the_o church_n into_o one_o this_o according_a to_o certain_a place_n &_o time_n forasmuch_o as_o she_o be_v not_o universal_o visible_a and_o to_o be_v see_v at_o one_o push_n but_o according_a to_o the_o age_n and_o in_o her_o degree_n in_o the_o invisible_a there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o sheep_n which_o never_o be_v gather_v into_o the_o visible_a and_o contrariwise_o in_o the_o visible_a a_o great_a many_o wolf_n which_o never_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o invisible_a and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v 9.6_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o sheep_n without_o and_o a_o great_a many_o wolf_n within_o and_o s._n paul_n say_v also_o they_o be_v not_o all_o israel_n which_o be_v of_o israel_n for_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o to_o say_v of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v with_o christ_n &_o incorporate_v in_o the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a through_o true_a faith_n towards_o god_n and_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o many_o here_o and_o there_o under_o paganism_n itself_o have_v this_o desire_n which_o yet_o bodily_a they_o can_v not_o accomplish_v the_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v with_o all_o their_o power_n as_o contrariwise_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v without_o the_o assembly_n but_o to_o have_v no_o participation_n of_o christ_n nor_o union_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n with_o his_o faithful_a of_o the_o invisible_a it_o be_v say_v 24.11_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o of_o the_o visible_a that_o she_o shall_v be_v so_o trouble_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o find_v faith_n on_o the_o earth_n 8.8_o that_o charity_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v quench_v insomuch_o that_o the_o elect_v themselves_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a shall_v utter_o quail_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o we_o say_v in_o our_o creed_n that_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n for_o if_o we_o ought_v to_o hold_v nothing_o for_o certain_a but_o that_o which_o we_o see_v with_o these_o carnal_a eye_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o all_o the_o state_n &_o age_n of_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v many_o time_n be_v find_v such_o a_o confusion_n as_o the_o good_a grain_n shall_v be_v altogether_o hide_v under_o the_o chaff_n without_o any_o appearance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o be_v then_o when_o god_n say_v to_o elias_n that_o he_o have_v reserve_v in_o the_o same_o 7000._o whereof_o the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n the_o seer_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o say_v he_o to_o who_o the_o good_a people_n ought_v especial_o to_o have_v be_v know_v can_v not_o outward_o know_v one_o and_o even_o then_o &_o there_o when_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o as_o god_n can_v not_o be_v serve_v visible_o but_o in_o jewrie_n all_o these_o difference_n notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v two_o church_n nor_o two_o espouse_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o believe_v one_o only_o consider_v diverse_o one_o in_o the_o blade_n and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o grain_n one_o in_o the_o thresh_a floor_n another_o in_o the_o garner_n one_o in_o the_o i_o another_o now_o already_o fyne_v the_o one_o enwrap_v yet_o in_o the_o mingle_n of_o the_o world_n the_o other_o before_o her_o husband_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n altogether_o like_v as_o by_o a_o family_n we_o proper_o understand_v the_o child_n only_o although_o speak_v more_o general_o we_o comprehend_v the_o servant_n themselves_o &_o by_o a_o city_n we_o understand_v the_o union_n of_o citizen_n albeit_o many_o time_n one_o part_n be_v at_o contention_n &_o consider_v apart_o by_o itself_o deserve_v not_o but_o to_o be_v root_v out_o return_v then_o to_o our_o purpose_n we_o will_v call_v the_o visible_a church_n the_o company_n of_o those_o which_o make_v profession_n to_o serve_v the_o true_a god_n in_o christ_n of_o which_o we_o have_v present_o to_o entreat_v this_o church_n have_v have_v three_o principal_a state_n or_o age_n one_o without_o the_o law_n than_o say_v some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n when_o man_n be_v but_o in_o some_o sort_n corrupt_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o when_o he_o be_v notwithstanding_o in_o some_o sort_n a_o law_n to_o himself_o &_o natural_o feel_v himself_o convince_v of_o his_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o feel_v his_o evil_a to_o seek_v for_o remedy_n for_o the_o same_o although_o in_o very_a truth_n this_o state_n and_o age_n of_o the_o church_n find_v itself_o no_o less_o corrupt_v then_o the_o rest_n the_o second_o be_v under_o the_o law_n when_o it_o begin_v in_o such_o sort_n to_o accustom_v itself_o to_o sin_n that_o it_o grow_v into_o a_o natural_a habit_n through_o the_o same_o and_o then_o for_o to_o show_v the_o sin_n thereof_o the_o law_n be_v give_v as_o a_o glass_n in_o which_o she_o may_v consider_v her_o filthiness_n and_o how_o far_o of_o she_o be_v from_o that_o she_o presume_v to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v return_v again_o to_o be_v cleanse_v the_o third_o be_v under_o grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n promise_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n by_o &_o by_o after_o their_o fall_n and_o who_o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n who_o bring_v remedy_n to_o all_o they_o that_o
his_o word_n cherish_v &_o nourish_v up_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o she_o at_o the_o first_o give_v we_o suck_v and_o afterward_o more_o fast_o and_o strong_a meat_n through_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n his_o body_n in_o the_o supper_n we_o be_v more_o and_o more_o unite_a to_o he_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v invest_v into_o that_o heavenly_a inheritance_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o she_o be_v the_o pure_a church_n and_o true_a mother_n who_o bring_v forth_o we_o her_o child_n through_o baptism_n regenerate_v &_o nourish_v we_o through_o the_o word_n knit_v we_o to_o christ_n and_o so_o amongst_a ourselves_o one_o to_o another_o through_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o supper_n that_o be_v to_o say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a mother_n in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o same_o word_n due_o administer_v in_o the_o church_n of_o juda_n and_o israel_n circumcision_n occupy_v the_o place_n of_o baptism_n &_o the_o passeover_n of_o the_o supper_n the_o word_n of_o god_n always_o keep_v his_o place_n as_o the_o ordinary_a nourishment_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o after_o their_o entry_n into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n joshua_n be_v admonish_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o repair_v those_o fault_n commit_v in_o the_o desert_n cap._n make_v the_o people_n to_o be_v circumcise_v and_o bind_v they_o by_o a_o oath_n if_o they_o will_v be_v his_o people_n to_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o they_o will_v be_v his_o church_n likewise_o josias_n after_o so_o great_a confusion_n and_o mingle_v mangle_v when_o he_o will_v reform_v the_o church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o that_o visible_a mark_n which_o circumcision_n have_v leave_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o see_v that_o he_o begin_v there_o first_o dig_v up_o as_o it_o be_v the_o law_n which_o have_v be_v bury_v &_o publish_v the_o same_o and_o make_v the_o people_n to_o swear_v solemn_o unto_o it_o and_o consequent_o he_o cause_v a_o passeover_n to_o be_v proclaim_v in_o these_o word_n celebrate_v the_o passover_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n 35_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o this_o covenant_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n esdras_n also_o after_o he_o be_v return_v from_o babylon_n for_o to_o re-edify_v the_o temple_n and_o to_o restore_v the_o church_n he_o begin_v at_o these_o foundation_n he_o expound_v the_o law_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o make_v they_o to_o swear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o that_o covenant_n and_o after_o to_o nourish_v and_o fortify_v they_o in_o the_o hope_v of_o their_o salvation_n to_o come_v he_o restore_v again_o the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o paschall_n according_a to_o those_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n to_o be_v short_a all_o the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n after_o that_o there_o come_v any_o great_a scatter_n of_o the_o church_n 7.6_o &_o be_v willing_a to_o redress_v it_o they_o have_v always_o before_o all_o other_o thing_n restore_v these_o mark_n no_o otherwise_o then_o a_o good_a captain_n who_o after_o a_o great_a slaughter_n &_o confusion_n range_v his_o man_n into_o a_o array_n and_o plant_v his_o standard_n in_o some_o high_a place_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v show_v themselves_o to_o all_o side_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o true_a husband_n have_v give_v we_o no_o other_o mark_n to_o know_v his_o espouse_v by_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o call_v the_o church_n his_o wife_n he_o teach_v she_o her_o duty_n which_o be_v to_o obey_v his_o word_n and_o not_o to_o hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n not_o to_o lose_v the_o token_n nor_o to_o defile_v the_o jewel_n and_o pledge_n of_o her_o marriage_n but_o mark_v how_o he_o speak_v in_o express_a word_n he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o again_o 18.37_o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o they_o follow_v i_o and_o in_o another_o place_n you_o hear_v not_o 8.47_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n the_o pure_a wife_n and_o church_n then_o of_o the_o truth_n be_v only_o she_o which_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n not_o a_o voice_n in_o the_o air_n or_o a_o imaginative_a voice_n but_o that_o voice_n which_o have_v it_o echo_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o which_o will_v resound_v until_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o same_o that_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n upon_o which_o saint_n paul_n teach_v we_o 2.20_o that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o send_v forth_o his_o apostle_n to_o erect_v the_o christian_a church_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o 28.19_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n 16.15_o etc_n etc_n and_o teach_v they_o to_o keep_v all_o that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o in_o the_o act_n we_o read_v that_o the_o faithful_a continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2.42_o in_o the_o communion_n &_o break_v of_o bread_n &_o in_o prayer_n which_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o brief_a description_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n instruct_v by_o the_o word_n in_o true_a faith_n and_o knit_v together_o in_o true_a charity_n through_o the_o communion_n that_o be_v in_o he_o the_o which_o thing_n s._n ambrose_n teach_v we_o 7._o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v that_o where_o god_n speak_v with_o his_o servant_n and_o s._n augustine_n also_o etc_n when_o he_o place_v the_o ministry_n of_o minister_n &_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o sacrament_n let_v we_o yet_o add_v hereunto_o the_o three_o mark_v of_o this_o church_n albeit_o it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n but_o outward_a to_o wit_n the_o lawful_a vocation_n of_o pastor_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a for_o see_v that_o there_o be_v question_n of_o preach_v be_v it_o by_o the_o word_n or_o by_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o word_n that_o may_v be_v feel_v 10.15_o and_o that_o to_o preach_v it_o behove_v that_o the_o minister_n be_v send_v it_o be_v very_o necessary_a that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v a_o order_n to_o send_v forth_o their_o pastor_n but_o more_o shall_v be_v see_v of_o this_o point_n in_o another_o place_n we_o will_v call_v then_o the_o true_a &_o pure_a church_n all_o those_o wherein_o we_o find_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o sacrament_n pure_o and_o lawful_o administer_v that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o cyprian_n say_v according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o we_o nothing_o doubt_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o &_o that_o god_n be_v there_o precedent_n howsoever_o in_o some_o certain_a point_n of_o doctrine_n there_o have_v be_v some_o error_n and_o in_o the_o outward_a policy_n some_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n and_o impurity_n in_o manner_n for_o it_o behoove_v that_o always_o we_o resort_v thither_o when_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v there_o true_o teach_v see_v we_o be_v man_n &_o the_o church_n be_v compound_v of_o man_n as_o speech_n and_o language_n consist_v of_o syllable_n and_o letter_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o which_o man_n as_o long_o as_o the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o world_n she_o be_v always_o a_o partaker_n as_o concern_v the_o false_a and_o impure_a church_n they_o be_v not_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v define_v truth_n soundness_n and_o right_n be_v but_o of_o one_o sort_n but_o error_n disease_n &_o crookedness_n be_v without_o number_n again_o there_o be_v many_o kind_n &_o degree_n of_o impure_a church_n notwithstanding_o we_o can_v say_v in_o one_o word_n that_o all_o those_o church_n be_v impure_a in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o sacrament_n be_v impure_o minister_v that_o be_v be_v administer_v both_o against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o because_o that_o the_o whole_a gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o whole_a christ_n nothing_o but_o head_n and_o body_n we_o may_v make_v two_o principal_a kind_n thereof_o call_v those_o heretic_n which_o err_v in_o the_o faith_n &_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o those_o schismatic_n which_o sunder_o themselves_o from_o charity_n and_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n yea_o although_o they_o agree_v otherwise_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n in_o all_o point_n now_o as_o there_o be_v many_o point_n in_o the_o
for_o the_o ordinary_a nourishment_n of_o his_o child_n the_o latin_a church_n to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v nourish_v they_o with_o husk_n and_o shale_n have_v hide_v it_o from_o they_o &_o bury_v it_o in_o the_o earth_n or_o if_o for_o shame_n she_o hau●_n sometime_o deliver_v it_o unto_o they_o it_o have_v be_v altogether_o cover_v with_o poison_n in_o stead_n that_o this_o word_n shall_v have_v direct_v we_o to_o god_n for_o our_o salvation_n she_o have_v send_v we_o to_o man_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o perdition_n yea_o to_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n himself_o whereas_o she_o shall_v have_v assure_v we_o in_o the_o infinite_a merit_n of_o one_o christ_n the_o infinite_a god_n the_o papacy_n have_v turn_v we_o to_o our_o own_o merit_n which_o merit_v nothing_o but_o hell_n and_o death_n the_o whole_a law_n be_v give_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o make_v we_o feel_v our_o sin_n &_o to_o search_v the_o remedy_n thereof_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o contrariwise_o the_o roman_a church_n make_v we_o to_o play_v the_o jew_n more_o than_o the_o jew_n promise_v we_o salvation_n of_o ourselves_o to_o the_o end_n that_o make_v we_o to_o search_v for_o it_o that_o way_n more_o fervent_o she_o may_v therein_o show_v we_o hell_n she_o have_v receive_v the_o devil_n into_o the_o lord_n house_n she_o have_v mingle_v in_o his_o bread_n of_o life_n death_n and_o into_o his_o cup_n she_o have_v put_v poison_n to_o conclude_v if_o through_o baptism_n which_o she_o have_v notwithstanding_o many_o way_n profane_v she_o enroul_v child_n to_o god_n as_o a_o mother_n yet_o be_v it_o certain_a on_o the_o contrary_a part_n that_o through_o her_o false_a worship_n she_o nourish_v they_o up_o to_o the_o devil_n and_o as_o concern_v salvation_n in_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o neck_n that_o join_v the_o head_n with_o the_o body_n jesus_n christ_n with_o his_o church_n it_o be_v so_o cut_v of_o by_o man_n merit_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n by_o the_o pope_n pardon_n and_o such_o other_o wickedness_n that_o the_o life_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v but_o by_o a_o very_a little_a thread_n the_o which_o have_v be_v straightway_o quite_o cut_v off_o antichrist_n have_v so_o well_o labour_v therein_o have_v not_o god_n through_o his_o great_a mercy_n send_v his_o servant_n in_o time_n to_o repress_v he_o as_o long_o then_o as_o this_o thread_n remain_v there_o we_o deny_v it_o not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n no_o more_o then_o unto_o a_o man_n the_o name_n of_o a_o man_n as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v what_o sickness_n soever_o he_o have_v yea_o we_o be_v content_a to_o call_v she_o the_o spouse_n so_o that_o therewithal_o she_o suffer_v we_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o call_v she_o a_o adulteress_n but_o we_o say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o heretical_a church_n worse_o than_o all_o the_o church_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v a_o wife_n which_o provoke_v god_n to_o a_o divorce_n a_o mother_n which_o nourish_v up_o her_o child_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o we_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o take_v she_o in_o childhood_n be_v defile_v in_o her_o blood_n 16._o and_o that_o he_o will_v wash_v she_o in_o her_o old_a age_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n &_o that_o he_o will_v remember_v as_o he_o promise_v to_o jerusalem_n &_o samaria_n the_o covenant_n make_v with_o she_o from_o her_o youth_n and_o that_o as_o he_o have_v do_v already_o in_o a_o good_a part_n of_o her_o member_n it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o restore_v she_o again_o to_o her_o first_o purity_n and_o integrity_n see_v then_o as_o concern_v the_o heretical_a and_o impure_a church_n in_o doctrine_n whereof_o we_o maintain_v the_o roman_a and_o latin_a church_n to_o be_v in_o the_o chief_a degree_n concern_v the_o schismatical_a church_n whether_o they_o be_v plain_o schismatical_a or_o whether_o heresy_n follow_v after_o a_o schism_n as_o a_o fever_n do_v after_o a_o wound_n heretic_n &_o schismatic_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v all_o one_o of_o heretic_n we_o have_v speak_v as_o before_o of_o schismatic_n we_o make_v here_o two_o distinction_n the_o cause_n say_v the_o canon_n make_v a_o schismatic_n &_o not_o the_o separation_n &_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o they_o which_o have_v give_v other_o a_o just_a occasion_n to_o separate_v then selue_o from_o their_o corruption_n be_v the_o schismatic_n &_o not_o they_o who_o have_v take_v it_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o schismatic_n although_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o scribe_n &_o pharisee_n &_o cut_v themselves_o of_o from_o their_o assembly_n but_o rather_o the_o priest_n &_o scribe_n which_o put_v they_o to_o death_n when_o they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o verify_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n amidst_o the_o church_n &_o we_o shall_v prove_v in_o his_o proper_a place_n that_z the_o self_n same_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o our_o time_n of_o those_o which_o have_v verify_v antichrist_n in_o a_o open_a council_n for_o the_o second_o we_o say_v that_o we_o must_v distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o author_n of_o a_o schism_n &_o those_o which_o follow_v it_o that_o the_o author_n of_o schism_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o rend_v themselves_o from_o charity_n &_o so_o by_o consequence_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o dathan_n core_n &_o abiram_n cut_v themselves_o asmuch_o as_n in_o they_o lie_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n concern_v the_o other_o we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n but_o evil_a govern_v by_o their_o pastor_n and_o principal_o those_o which_o be_v bear_v under_o the_o schism_n forasmuch_o as_o neither_o of_o both_o be_v without_o blame_n neither_o can_v in_o any_o wise_a excuse_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o dathan_n and_o his_o companion_n be_v swallow_v up_o 16._o and_o the_o congregation_n which_o cleave_v unto_o he_o be_v spare_v but_o in_o that_o it_o see_v the_o horrible_a punishment_n of_o those_o who_o it_o have_v follow_v it_o be_v warn_v to_o separate_v itself_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o like_a in_o like_a manner_n jeroboam_n &_o his_o successor_n which_o through_o ambition_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n be_v accurse_v and_o yet_o samaria_n cease_v not_o therefore_o at_o the_o least_o to_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n neither_o by_o reason_n of_o her_o false_a worship_n half_a jewish_a &_o half_a heathenish_a to_o be_v short_a ambition_n &_o the_o want_n of_o charity_n whereof_o it_o proceed_v these_o make_v schismatic_n &_o therefore_o the_o poor_a people_n which_o do_v not_o hold_v thereof_o but_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o faction_n of_o the_o mighty_a as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o stream_n this_o although_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n yet_o proper_o it_o be_v not_o a_o schism_n and_o even_o as_o in_o faction_n which_o be_v make_v in_o a_o kingdom_n against_o the_o common_a wealth_n a_o good_a prince_n punish_v the_o captain_n &_o through_o his_o clemency_n pardon_v the_o people_n who_o be_v let_v alone_o either_o to_o go_v through_o ignorance_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o authority_n etc_n etc_n even_o so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v that_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n do_v towards_o his_o poor_a child_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v mourn_v under_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o prelate_n &_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o their_o subtle_a counsel_n this_o be_v simple_o speak_v of_o the_o schismatical_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o have_v no_o notable_a heresy_n join_v with_o their_o schism_n the_o like_a thing_n also_o may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o heretic_n for_o oftentimes_o the_o leader_n of_o the_o church_n be_v heretic_n by_o their_o subtlety_n in_o certain_a thing_n &_o not_o the_o people_n who_o understand_v they_o not_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o word_n which_o always_o be_v most_o true_a but_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o this_o more_o ample_o in_o another_o place_n we_o will_v conclude_v then_o that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n be_v faith_n and_o charity_n the_o word_n and_o the_o sacrament_n pure_o &_o lawful_o administer_v 11._o the_o mark_n of_o the_o impure_a church_n be_v when_o therein_o they_o fail_v in_o part_n or_o be_v impure_a the_o which_o thing_n many_o time_n fall_v out_o ordinary_o together_o to_o be_v short_a howsoever_o it_o be_v when_o it_o have_v no_o religion_n nor_o no_o doctrine_n nor_o no_o visible_a sign_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o other_o we_o say_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v their_o doctrine_n comprise_v in_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n &_o their_o sacrament_n which_o be_v baptism_n &_o the_o supper_n that_o those_o which_o minister_v the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o pure_o
they_o may_v crucify_v he_o now_o i_o demand_v of_o our_o adversary_n what_o they_o can_v require_v in_o the_o outward_a estate_n of_o a_o church_n that_o be_v not_o in_o this_o church_n here_o if_o it_o be_v antiquity_n they_o be_v from_o abraham_n if_o it_o be_v call_v they_o be_v priest_n and_o scribe_n if_o it_o be_v a_o place_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n house_n if_o it_o be_v a_o council_n 11.47_o this_o be_v solemn_o hold_v against_o christ_n in_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v there_o express_o condemn_v be_v it_o whether_o they_o consider_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n or_o of_o the_o prelate_n this_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o this_o church_n have_v most_o foul_o err_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n crucify_a salvation_n himself_o unless_o they_o will_v deny_v that_o christ_n be_v our_o salvation_n but_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v very_o apparent_a which_o be_v that_o they_o seek_v he_o not_o in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o in_o their_o tradition_n cabal_n or_o unwritten_a verity_n for_o the_o shepherd_n in_o the_o field_n know_v he_o and_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o people_n set_v their_o dog_n upon_o he_o this_o also_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v liken_v to_o a_o earthly_a king_n devide_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n among_o their_o own_o whereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o which_o promise_v not_o himself_o acrowne_v or_o the_o government_n of_o some_o country_n whereas_o they_o see_v that_o the_o true_a christ_n be_v poor_a naked_a evil_a entreat_v 12.38_o not_o so_o much_o as_o promise_v to_o his_o a_o place_n to_o lay_v their_o head_n in_o to_o be_v short_a it_o be_v so_o far_o of_o 53.10_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o the_o true_a christ_n for_o that_o as_o they_o pretend_v they_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n that_o if_o they_o have_v account_v any_o for_o such_o a_o one_o this_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o infallible_a argument_n to_o they_o that_o have_v read_v the_o scripture_n 6.9_o that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v the_o christ_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v express_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o behold_v then_o what_o be_v fall_v out_o to_o the_o jew_n say_v saint_n paul_n 9_o to_o who_o be_v long_v the_o adoption_n and_o the_o glory_n &_o the_o covenant_n and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o who_o also_o the_o father_n be_v descend_v cap._n and_o of_o who_o also_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n christ_n himself_o come_v etc_n etc_n to_o wit_n that_o for_o have_v reject_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n their_o poverty_n be_v make_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o gentile_n &_o their_o rejection_n the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o world_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o god_n in_o stead_n of_o turn_v away_o from_o mankind_n for_o the_o blindness_n of_o his_o own_o people_n have_v take_v occasion_n thereby_o to_o adopt_v all_o people_n for_o his_o people_n let_v we_o not_o say_v therefore_o any_o more_o that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v because_o that_o god_n be_v firm_a in_o his_o promise_n but_o rather_o that_o god_n be_v true_o sure_a in_o his_o promise_n and_o constant_a in_o his_o mercy_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o make_v no_o divorce_n with_o she_o albeit_o she_o have_v abandon_v he_o and_o strange_o play_v the_o harlot_n so_o enlarge_n the_o bowel_n of_o his_o compassion_n towards_o mankind_n and_o turn_v his_o great_a wrath_n into_o so_o inspeakable_a mercy_n as_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v in_o our_o time_n in_o the_o great_a number_n which_o he_o have_v withdraw_v and_o daily_a do_v withdraw_v from_o the_o swynishe_a filth_n of_o the_o popedom_n it_o remain_v then_o now_o that_o we_o see_v err_v whether_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v under_o grace_n have_v have_v any_o more_o special_a grace_n not_o to_o err_v wherein_o we_o have_v always_o to_o call_v to_o our_o remembrance_n that_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v universal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v not_o any_o long_o tie_v to_o any_o one_o place_n or_o to_o any_o one_o people_n 10_o but_o be_v stretch_v over_o all_o people_n and_o place_n where_o he_o be_v serve_v and_o worship_v now_o this_o universal_a church_n have_v goodly_a &_o great_a promise_n i_o will_v make_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n with_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n 37.26_o i_o will_v put_v my_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o for_o ever_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n behold_v that_o which_o ezech._n the_o prophet_n have_v foretell_v of_o the_o covenant_n make_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o universal_a church_n jesus_n christ_n also_o say_v himself_o i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n also_o 8._o i_o will_v send_v you_o my_o spirit_n which_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n etc_n etc_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o hereby_o we_o do_v not_o imagine_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v ourselves_o to_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v always_o of_o one_o sort_n whatsoever_o she_o do_v the_o condition_n be_v evermore_o add_v if_o you_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n if_o you_o be_v my_o people_n if_o you_o shall_v teach_v that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o if_o you_o shall_v love_v i_o and_o abide_v in_o my_o word_n for_o if_o you_o shall_v not_o abide_v therein_o say_v our_o lord_n you_o be_v not_o my_o disciple_n and_o those_o which_o be_v not_o his_o disciple_n can_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o end_n not_o to_o be_v deceive_v the_o prerogative_n then_o that_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a christian_a church_n be_v not_o that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o her_o particular_a part_n but_o rather_o that_o be_v universal_a when_o one_o part_n do_v fall_v the_o other_o do_v help_v it_o up_o and_o when_o the_o one_o do_v go_v astray_o the_o other_o may_v bring_v it_o into_o the_o way_n again_o yea_o and_o the_o particular_a member_n do_v their_o duty_n when_o the_o more_o apparent_a leader_n of_o the_o church_n do_v guide_v it_o to_o destruction_n again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o that_o she_o be_v universal_a it_o ought_v a_o great_a deal_n rather_o to_o beat_v down_o this_o same_o particular_a presumption_n of_o not_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n forasmuch_o as_o when_o there_o be_v a_o temple_n either_o overthrow_v or_o profane_v that_o sacrifice_n as_o in_o time_n past_a cease_v not_o any_o more_o but_o rather_o of_o the_o ruin_n &_o remainder_n other_o may_v be_v else_o where_o build_v up_o again_o where_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o s._n paul_n fear_v lest_o that_o the_o serpent_n which_o seduce_v eve_n through_o his_o subtlety_n shall_v turn_v the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o simplicity_n 11.3_o if_o she_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o his_o gospel_n he_o mean_v then_o that_o she_o may_v err_v he_o also_o chide_v the_o galatian_n who_o after_o they_o have_v christ_n draw_v as_o it_o be_v lively_a before_o their_o eye_n 3.1_o and_o crucify_v among_o they_o that_o they_o be_v so_o sudden_o carry_v away_o to_o a_o other_o gospel_n this_o therefore_o be_v not_o only_o a_o thing_n possible_a but_o a_o thing_n i_o say_v which_o heretofore_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v even_o while_o the_o apostle_n live_v to_o be_v short_a he_o warn_v the_o thessalonian_n 2_o that_o antichrist_n that_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o church_n there_o to_o confound_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o even_o in_o his_o time_n this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v it_o can_v not_o be_v then_o that_o she_o err_v in_o light_a matter_n only_o but_o even_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n forasmuch_o as_o she_o have_v receive_v &_o embrace_v her_o perdition_n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o her_o own_o bowel_n the_o which_o thing_n if_o we_o shall_v mark_v by_o experience_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o every_o where_o where_o jesus_n christ_n sow_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o good_a grain_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o apostle_n the_o devil_n that_o watch_v while_o that_o the_o husbandman_n sleep_v sow_v there_o his_o darnel_n &_o lie_v and_o final_o there_o so_o bestir_v himself_o in_o till_v &_o plough_v it_o that_o he_o choke_v the_o seed_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o many_o place_n until_o that_o he_o have_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o master_n of_o the_o harvest_n the_o zeal_n of_o those_o of_o the_o
pray_v to_o god_n &_o acknowledge_v his_o own_o infirmity_n and_o hereof_o also_o it_o come_v that_o he_o that_o esteem_v more_o of_o himself_o then_o all_o his_o companion_n shall_v stumble_v and_o fall_v more_o shameful_o than_o all_o they_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o shall_v rather_o draw_v this_o conclusion_n from_o thence_o which_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o text_n that_o as_o he_o trust_v to_o much_o to_o himself_o renounce_v god_n and_o do_v worse_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n so_o likewise_o it_o may_v do_v when_o it_o be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v follow_v that_o according_a to_o his_o example_n it_o shall_v weep_v at_o the_o crow_n of_o the_o cock_n and_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o fault_n thereof_o three_o if_o this_o follow_v christ_n pray_v for_o peter_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v found_v by_o he_o can_v not_o err_v then_o must_v it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o other_o apostle_n can_v not_o err_v for_o jesus_n christ_n draw_v near_o to_o his_o cross_n 17.20_o pray_v most_o earnest_o for_o his_o apostle_n and_o for_o all_o those_o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o through_o their_o preach_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v one_o in_o the_o father_n &_o in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v inseparable_o knit_v unto_o he_o and_o yet_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v excommunicate_v they_o as_o heretic_n and_o have_v hold_v they_o as_o cut_v of_o from_o salvation_n it_o follow_v then_o either_o that_o this_o conclusion_n be_v false_a jesus_n christ_n pray_v ergo_fw-la it_o can_v not_o err_v or_o else_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o invisible_a church_n against_o which_o hell_n gate_n can_v prevail_v four_o s._n paul_n understand_v not_o this_o subtlety_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o see_v that_o he_o admonish_v the_o roman_n call_v from_o amongst_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o proud_o advance_v themselves_o against_o the_o jew_n under_o this_o shadow_n that_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o their_o place_n 11._o for_o say_v he_o the_o natural_a branch_n be_v cut_v of_o through_o unbelief_n and_o thou_o be_v engraft_v in_o by_o faith_n and_o if_o god_n have_v not_o spare_v they_o take_v heed_n lest_o he_o also_o spare_v not_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v take_v heed_n that_o thou_o fall_v not_o from_o faith_n as_o they_o have_v do_v he_o mean_v then_o that_o he_o think_v they_o not_o to_o be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o danger_n neither_o do_v cyprian_n likewise_o write_v to_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n say_v 17._o that_o the_o praise_n which_o s._n paul_n attribute_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v make_v know_v throughout_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v turn_v to_o their_o shame_n if_o they_o do_v not_o persevere_v to_o inherit_v this_o faith_n nor_o s._n hierom_n also_o when_o he_o say_v rusticum_n that_o after_o that_o covetousness_n be_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v into_o the_o empire_n the_o law_n shall_v perish_v from_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o vision_n from_o the_o prophet_n nor_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o take_v rome_n for_o that_o babylon_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n &_o for_o the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v do_v a_o great_a deal_n better_a to_o follow_v their_o old_a gloze_n upon_o this_o place_n of_o s._n luke_n ibi_fw-la that_o as_z in_o pray_v for_o he_o he_o say_v oh_o peter_n i_o have_v keep_v thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v even_o so_o also_o comfort_v the_o poor_a weak_a one_o by_o thy_o example_n of_o repentance_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o their_o sin_n they_o fall_v not_o into_o despair_n but_o that_o they_o hope_v for_o mercy_n as_o have_v be_v show_v unto_o thou_o final_o beside_o all_o these_o foresay_a reason_n betweent_fw-mi the_o antecedent_n christ_n pray_v for_o peter_n &_o the_o consequent_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o err_v there_o be_v infinite_a thing_n to_o prove_v between_o these_o two_o sentence_n to_o wit_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n that_o he_o be_v b._n there_o that_o he_o particular_o found_v any_o church_n there_o that_o he_o have_v this_o prerogative_n above_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o can_v not_o err_v that_o he_o either_o tie_v it_o or_o can_v tie_v it_o to_o that_o chair_n either_o for_o the_o pope_n or_o for_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o which_o thing_n ought_v first_o to_o be_v plain_o prove_v before_o we_o can_v come_v to_o any_o such_o conclusion_n let_v we_o come_v then_o to_o we_o follow_v our_o promise_n and_o notwithstanding_o their_o objection_n of_o this_o place_n let_v we_o conclude_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o time_n this_o present_a disputation_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v deliver_v to_o his_o church_n the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o a_o compass_n to_o a_o ship_n for_o to_o conduct_v and_o guide_v it_o to_o salvation_n look_v unto_o this_o compass_n she_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v for_o it_o show_v always_o unto_o she_o her_o mark_n whatsoever_o wind_n do_v drive_v she_o and_o not_o look_v unto_o it_o she_o can_v not_o but_o err_v and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n no_o more_o than_o all_o the_o pilot_n or_o shipmaster_n of_o the_o world_n together_o know_v without_o a_o good_a compass_n to_o keep_v their_o course_n one_o only_a hour_n to_o the_o church_n which_o follow_v his_o word_n he_o have_v promise_v they_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o spirit_n from_o these_o which_o make_v no_o account_n of_o it_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o account_v they_o unworthy_a of_o his_o presence_n which_o disdain_n to_o harken_v to_o his_o voice_n hereof_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o estate_n and_o place_n have_v great_o err_v &_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n but_o more_o this_o then_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o have_v be_v more_o bold_a to_o intermeddle_v without_o the_o lead_v of_o the_o word_n &_o which_o have_v most_o presume_v of_o her_o own_o ability_n to_o wit_n the_o romish_a church_n if_o she_o have_v no_o other_o privilege_n and_o promise_n then_o the_o visible_a and_o universal_a church_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o she_o may_v err_v for_o we_o have_v see_v by_o she_o own_o confession_n that_o she_o have_v err_v even_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n in_o her_o most_o notable_a member_n if_o she_o have_v any_o special_a privilege_n as_o that_o which_o she_o allege_v of_o saint_n peter_n seat_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o exempt_v she_o not_o neither_o from_o error_n nor_o heresy_n but_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v see_v how_o vain_a and_o weak_a this_o foundation_n be_v whereupon_o they_o will_v build_v a_o article_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n it_o follow_v that_o we_o examine_v those_o title_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o she_o pretend_v this_o privilege_n that_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n by_o any_o right_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n chap._n vii_o when_o we_o demand_v of_o our_o adversary_n upon_o what_o their_o tradition_n be_v found_v which_o they_o make_v equal_a with_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o have_v not_o any_o show_n of_o foundation_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o answer_v we_o that_o they_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n if_o hereupon_o we_o will_v beat_v they_o down_o allege_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v govern_v after_o god_n his_o will_n contain_v in_o his_o word_n and_o that_o such_o doctrine_n be_v not_o agreeable_a thereunto_o they_o reply_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n if_o we_o prove_v far_o unto_o they_o by_o the_o discourse_n of_o all_o time_n that_o often_o time_n she_o have_v abandon_v the_o pure_a service_n of_o god_n to_o follow_v she_o own_o invention_n even_o until_o she_o have_v be_v defile_v with_o all_o abominable_a idolatry_n they_o reply_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v this_o particular_a privilege_n that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v because_o it_o be_v s._n peter_n seat_n the_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o by_o this_o mean_v all_o the_o controversy_n in_o a_o manner_n that_o we_o have_v with_o they_o come_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n or_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o be_v different_a in_o themselves_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n constantiense_n in_o this_o quality_n there_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o change_v the_o
the_o canker_n of_o these_o heresy_n fret_v no_o far_o but_o may_v in_o time_n be_v stay_v that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v his_o poor_a church_n preserve_v and_o his_o gracious_a blessing_n feal_v amongst_o we_o not_o only_o in_o our_o day_n but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o child_n child_n after_o we_o amen_o your_o good_a lordship_n most_o bind_v and_o faithful_a io._n field_n to_o the_o most_o excellent_a prince_n henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n prince_n and_o sovereign_n lord_n of_o bearne_n etc_n etc_n peer_n and_o chief_a prince_n of_o the_o blood_n royal_a of_o france_n this_o little_a book_n which_o i_o presume_v to_o offer_v to_o your_o majesty_n my_o very_a good_a lord_n belong_v unto_o you_o by_o a_o double_a right_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o it_o intreat_v of_o the_o church_n whereof_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o raise_v you_o up_o to_o be_v a_o defender_n in_o our_o country_n of_o france_n then_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o author_n himself_o for_o see_v that_o he_o have_v vow_v and_o give_v himself_o to_o your_o majesty_n with_o all_o that_o by_o god_n grace_n he_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v forth_o the_o propriety_n and_o right_n be_v in_o you_o wherefore_o if_o it_o shall_v please_v you_o to_o read_v you_o shall_v find_v herein_o a_o little_a after_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o right_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o what_o now_o at_o this_o present_a it_o be_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o what_o honour_n god_n have_v show_v unto_o you_o in_o our_o time_n choose_v you_o out_o from_o amongst_o so_o many_o great_a prince_n to_o deliver_v it_o from_o such_o a_o bondage_n the_o world_n will_v make_v no_o account_n of_o these_o honour_n neither_o be_v it_o of_o the_o world_n but_o to_o a_o christian_a prince_n who_o will_v consider_v that_o god_n do_v hold_v his_o church_n so_o dear_a that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o dear_o belove_a son_n to_o the_o death_n and_o to_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n for_o her_o sake_n this_o honour_n shall_v be_v more_o precious_a in_o his_o sight_n than_o the_o whole_a world_n this_o undoubted_o be_v a_o great_a work_n &_o wherein_o very_o there_o be_v much_o toil_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v certain_a that_o the_o nation_n and_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o most_o part_n will_v band_n themselves_o together_o to_o maintain_v and_o underprop_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n but_o beyond_o this_o as_o in_o all_o great_a thing_n so_o in_o this_o there_o remain_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o toil_n a_o most_o assure_a victory_n for_o this_o thing_n the_o word_n of_o god_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o that_o kingdom_n must_v fall_v and_o that_o christ_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v through_o all_o to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n yea_o that_o they_o themselves_o which_o shall_v have_v maintain_v antichrist_n shall_v hew_v he_o in_o piece_n of_o this_o travail_n the_o worst_a and_o great_a brunt_n be_v already_o past_a god_n have_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o child_n divide_v it_o amongst_o so_o many_o great_a and_o notable_a personage_n which_o in_o our_o time_n have_v travail_v therein_o and_o now_o have_v rest_v themselves_o from_o their_o travail_n in_o that_o same_o bless_a happiness_n and_o if_o so_o be_v any_o thing_n yet_o remain_v it_o behove_v that_o you_o take_v good_a courage_n for_o god_n who_o have_v crown_v you_o will_v also_o crown_v this_o good_a work_n by_o you_o and_o as_o for_o the_o force_n which_o now_o they_o do_v seem_v to_o make_v what_o be_v they_o else_o but_o the_o gry●ng_a wring_n of_o antichrist_n and_o these_o gripe_a ●●●gings_n be_v evident_a and_o undoubted_a token_n that_o hi●●●●●h_n draw_v near_o god_n have_v make_v you_o my_o very_a good_a lord_n to_o know_v his_o truth_n even_o from_o your_o childhood_n and_o he_o have_v employ_v you_o in_o his_o work_n in_o your_o first_o youth_n he_o have_v beautify_v you_o with_o great_a gift_n to_o this_o end_n as_o strength_n of_o body_n quicken_v of_o spirit_n valiancy_n of_o courage_n and_o employ_v these_o in_o his_o service_n he_o will_v crown_v they_o in_o you_o with_o happiness_n honour_n riches_n and_o high_a advavancement_n for_o these_o be_v no_o other_o than_o accessory_n and_o he_o who_o have_v give_v you_o the_o principal_a can_v give_v you_o these_o and_o by_o he_o alone_o also_o it_o be_v that_o king_n reign_n and_o that_o prince_n judge_v the_o earth_n and_o sir_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o require_v of_o you_o this_o be_v it_o that_o christendom_n look_v for_o at_o your_o hand_n this_o be_v that_o which_o all_o good_a man_n do_v promise_v themselves_o this_o then_o be_v the_o alone_a and_o only_o mark_v that_o your_o majesty_n must_v am_z at_o and_o therefore_o sir_n as_o one_o of_o your_o most_o low_o servant_n i_o make_v this_o humble_a petition_n that_o day_n and_o night_n you_o may_v lively_o represent_v and_o keep_v before_o your_o presence_n the_o dignity_n and_o greatness_n of_o this_o charge_n to_o which_o god_n have_v call_v you_o that_o you_o may_v employ_v those_o rare_a gift_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o you_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o his_o kingdom_n that_o you_o may_v think_v then_o to_o reign_v most_o safe_o when_o he_o shall_v reign_v by_o his_o word_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o this_o be_v the_o most_o sure_a and_o short_a way_n that_o your_o trusty_a servant_n can_v direct_v you_o in_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o your_o highness_n i_o beseech_v god_n therefore_o sir_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o assist_v you_o through_o his_o spirit_n in_o this_o work_n to_o govern_v your_o heart_n and_o all_o your_o action_n and_o to_o heap_v upon_o you_o his_o blessing_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n your_o most_o humble_a obedient_a and_o faithful_a servant_n du_n plessis_n to_o the_o reader_n i_o pray_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n to_o read_v this_o treatise_n not_o as_o have_v already_o find_v the_o truth_n but_o seek_v for_o it_o likewise_o and_o i_o pray_v thou_o to_o read_v it_o out_o before_o thou_o judge_v of_o it_o and_o if_o it_o accord_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o adjure_v thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n &_o by_o thine_o own_o salvation_n that_o thou_o open_o declare_v it_o for_o it_o behove_v that_o we_o wait_v no_o long_o to_o speak_v see_v once_o that_o wink_v at_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n our_o kingdom_n fall_v to_o ruin_v in_o the_o ruin_n whereof_o be_v the_o danger_n of_o we_o all_o if_o yet_o there_o be_v find_v any_o doubt_n they_o show_v it_o by_o writing_n we_o shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n endeavour_n to_o make_v it_o clear_a but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o which_o will_v improve_v the_o whole_a i_o pray_v they_o that_o they_o will_v answer_v point_n by_o point_n and_o reason_n by_o reason_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o sincerity_n and_o gentleness_n seek_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o prize_n of_o victory_n the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o not_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n for_o i_o protest_v before_o god_n that_o in_o this_o treatise_n i_o have_v aim_v at_o no_o thing_n else_o but_o their_o salvation_n what_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o sundry_a state_n thereof_o chap._n i._n god_o through_o his_o might_n the_o creator_n of_o mankind_n vouchsave_v of_o his_o own_o good_a will_n to_o be_v the_o father_n thereof_o will_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v honour_v &_o acknowledge_v as_o mother_n of_o all_o those_o of_o who_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o be_v father_n in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o be_v not_o save_v but_o in_o this_o that_o god_n have_v allow_v we_o for_o his_o child_n and_o that_o he_o have_v allow_v none_o to_o be_v such_o but_o those_o that_o be_v regenerate_v and_o nourish_v up_o in_o his_o church_n if_o we_o desire_v our_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o acknowledge_v she_o in_o who_o lap_n we_o have_v it_o and_o if_o we_o will_v be_v heir_n of_o the_o father_n we_o must_v be_v unite_v in_o the_o family_n of_o the_o mother_n in_o which_o it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o beget_v those_o again_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o be_v hetre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o coheir_n of_o his_o dear_o belove_a son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n all_o they_o that_o be_v knit_v and_o incorporate_v into_o this_o church_n in_o true_a faith_n &_o charity_n be_v partaker_n of_o this_o inheritance_n because_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o without_o she_o
be_v that_o pure_a church_n that_o those_o which_o minister_v they_o impure_o be_v the_o impure_a church_n &_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o most_o impure_a of_o all_o other_o which_o have_v so_o villainous_o defile_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o there_o remain_v not_o any_o more_o so_o much_o as_o any_o show_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o other_o mark_n which_o our_o adversary_n allege_v be_v common_a both_o to_o the_o pure_a and_o the_o impure_a church_n &_o such_o as_o for_o the_o most_o part_n hold_v not_o chap._n iii_o they_o that_o perceive_v themselves_o vanquish_v in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o pure_a &_o sound_a church_n they_o will_v quit_v contrary_a make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o be_v know_v by_o the_o pure_a &_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n but_o by_o certain_a outward_a mark_n to_o wit_n by_o antiquity_n multitude_n succession_n of_o place_n and_o person_n by_o miracle_n &_o revelation_n no_o otherwise_o then_o false_a coiner_n which_o will_v not_o have_v man_n to_o know_v their_o money_n by_o the_o fineness_n of_o gold_n and_o by_o the_o touchstone_n but_o by_o the_o weight_n by_o the_o sound_n &_o by_o the_o coin_n &_o the_o colour_n which_o they_o may_v easy_o falsify_v they_o allege_v therefore_o unto_o we_o antiquity_n antiquity_n follow_v that_o which_o be_v say_v unto_o job_n of_o one_o of_o his_o friend_n 32.7_o ask_v for_o the_o ancient_a generation_n &_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o seek_v after_o the_o father_n again_o day_n shall_v speak_v or_o the_o multitude_n of_o year_n shall_v teach_v wisdom_n to_o who_o i_o can_v answer_v by_o job_n himself_o even_o in_o the_o verse_n next_o follow_v the_o master_n be_v not_o always_o wise_a neither_o do_v that_o old_a man_n always_o understand_v judgement_n also_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n &_o not_o year_n that_o ought_v to_o speak_v in_o man_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o make_v a_o instance_n so_o low_o it_o behoove_v that_o we_o give_v they_o a_o more_o full_a answer_n the_o question_n be_v here_o of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o church_n now_o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o little_a bark_n or_o ship_n and_o the_o more_o she_o be_v upon_o the_o sea_n the_o more_o she_o leak_v and_o unto_o a_o house_n which_o with_o age_n decay_v and_o fall_v to_o ruin_v and_o to_o a_o city_n and_o the_o policy_n of_o it_o corrupt_v if_o once_o a_o man_n draw_v it_o to_o any_o other_o beginning_n and_o to_o a_o man_n body_n to_o which_o year_n do_v bring_v a_o heap_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o evil_n to_o be_v short_a to_o the_o most_o healthful_a and_o temperate_a body_n in_o the_o world_n age_n be_v even_o as_o sickness_n itself_o i_o say_v then_o that_o antiquity_n alone_o aught_o to_o make_v we_o think_v that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o great_a sickness_n and_o much_o filthiness_n and_o that_o even_o for_o this_o cause_n alone_o without_o any_o long_a confutation_n it_o behoove_v we_o to_o bring_v a_o broom_n to_o purge_v it_o and_o to_o call_v for_o a_o physician_n so_o far_o be_v it_o of_o that_o for_o these_o thing_n a_o man_n shall_v maintain_v that_o she_o be_v pure_a and_o sound_a as_o they_o do_v furthermore_o i_o demand_v how_o they_o will_v answer_v unto_o the_o heathen_a yea_o to_o saint_n austin_n himself_o 64._o who_o say_v that_o jerusalem_n begin_v by_o abel_n and_o babylon_n by_o rain_n also_o that_o the_o promise_n be_v by_o isaac_n and_o the_o bastardise_n by_o ishmael_n which_o be_v the_o elder_n consequent_o what_o will_v they_o have_v answer_v unto_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n if_o that_o antiquity_n have_v be_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n now_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o believer_n for_o they_o have_v their_o genealogy_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o first_o man_n they_o can_v have_v allege_v the_o covenant_n that_o be_v make_v of_o old_a between_o god_n and_o they_o and_o after_o that_o christ_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o these_o promise_n under_o the_o shadow_n of_o this_o antiquity_n they_o call_v he_o the_o carpenter_n son_n a_o samaritan_n one_o that_o have_v the_o devil_n a_o preacher_n of_o novelty_n and_o there_o be_v great_a likelihood_n that_o if_o our_o master_n have_v be_v then_o there_o in_o that_o time_n see_v that_o they_o keep_v the_o self_n same_o argument_n they_o will_v have_v help_v to_o have_v crucify_v he_o now_o we_o say_v likewise_o that_o antichrist_n who_o be_v foretell_v unto_o we_o enter_v into_o this_o ruinous_a house_n while_o the_o most_o part_n be_v a_o sleep_n in_o this_o dead_a sleep_n of_o antiquity_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o watchman_v &_o pray_v &_o that_o the_o subtle_a lend_a he_o their_o hand_n till_o he_o have_v turn_v all_o topsy-turvy_o and_o yet_o man_n will_v not_o know_v he_o furthermore_o i_o demand_v what_o they_o will_v answer_v unto_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o armenian _n ethiopian_n etc_n etc_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o as_o old_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o and_o elder_a too_o see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o know_v take_v her_o beginning_n from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n if_o antiquity_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o purity_n they_o be_v pure_a &_o if_o they_o be_v pure_a the_o latin_a church_n in_o comparison_n &_o to_o their_o judgement_n be_v most_o impure_a if_o they_o be_v heretic_n &_o impure_a as_o the_o latin_a church_n do_v hold_v they_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o antiquity_n be_v not_o a_o mark_n to_o prove_v the_o purity_n or_o verity_n of_o the_o church_n how_o then_o shall_v we_o reject_v antiquity_n nay_o rather_o we_o embrace_v it_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n &_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o than_o our_o adversary_n but_o in_o such_o fort_n we_o embrace_v it_o as_o the_o ancient_a of_o time_n be_v ask_v 8._o &_o hear_v before_o all_o our_o father_n and_o always_o according_a to_o this_o most_o certain_a rule_n that_o primum_fw-la quodque_fw-la verissimum_fw-la that_o the_o first_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o question_n of_o a_o pure_a church_n we_o look_v into_o the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o she_o have_v be_v of_o old_a time_n &_o that_o we_o draw_v she_o from_o the_o rust_n of_o our_o evil_n which_o she_o have_v get_v through_o age_n &_o so_o restore_v she_o unto_o the_o beauty_n &_o integrity_n of_o her_o youth_n see_v then_o how_o we_o ought_v to_o honour_v antiquity_n to_o reform_v ourselves_o according_a unto_o it_o and_o not_o to_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o the_o rust_n and_o so_o to_o perish_v under_o the_o shadow_n of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n which_o our_o master_n have_v give_v we_o when_o there_o be_v question_n concern_v divorce_n that_o moses_n have_v agree_v unto_o the_o people_n for_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o have_v a_o prescription_n long_a enough_o if_o prescription_n may_v have_v have_v place_n against_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o he_o answer_v in_o one_o word_n it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n 10.4_o that_o be_v to_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o ordinance_n of_o god_n tertullian_n say_v prescription_n be_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n neither_o time_n velandis_fw-la nor_o authority_n of_o person_n nor_o privilege_n of_o kingdom_n for_o there_o be_v no_o foolish_a custom_n which_o can_v have_v authority_n against_o the_o truth_n now_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o truth_n and_o not_o custom_n and_o if_o christ_n be_v always_o &_o more_o ancient_a than_o all_o then_o also_o be_v truth_n more_o ancient_a than_o all_o custom_n heresy_n have_v always_o be_v vanquish_v by_o the_o truth_n &_o not_o by_o novelty_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o truth_n it_o be_v heresy_n although_o it_o be_v never_o so_o old_a a_o custom_n cyprian_n say_v we_o must_v not_o regard_v that_o 3._o which_o any_o other_o have_v do_v before_o we_o but_o we_o must_v regard_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v do_v 11._o which_o be_v before_o all_o for_o we_o must_v not_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n again_o he_o say_v custom_n without_o truth_n be_v a_o old_a error_n &_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v i_o be_o the_o truth_n and_o not_o i_o be_o custom_n ignatius_n say_v all_o my_o antiquity_n be_v jesus_n christ_n who_o not_o to_o hear_v be_v manifest_a perdition_n see_v then_o how_o the_o most_o ancient_a send_v we_o always_o to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v
most_o ancient_a of_o all_o for_o this_o be_v always_o a_o right_a rule_n iuris_fw-la and_o to_o be_v receive_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v nought_o worth_a in_o the_o beginning_n be_v no_o whit_n better_a in_o the_o continuance_n of_o time_n and_o if_o a_o man_n can_v prescribe_v against_o king_n and_o against_o the_o church_n in_o their_o possession_n much_o less_o he_o can_v do_v it_o against_o god_n and_o against_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o only_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o multitude_n 23._o it_o be_v say_v express_o thou_o shall_v not_o follow_v a_o multitude_n to_o do_v evil_a 12.32_o also_o the_o gate_n be_v wide_a that_o lead_v to_o perdition_n contrary_a wise_a fear_v not_o my_o little_a flock_n for_o it_o be_v my_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n 11.23_o moreover_o we_o see_v that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v bring_v to_o one_o only_a noah_n and_o afterward_o to_o abraham_n then_o god_n choose_v one_o people_n of_o israel_n the_o least_o as_o he_o have_v say_v of_o all_o people_n and_o final_o of_o all_o people_n the_o least_o part_n to_o wit_n christendom_n which_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o call_v a_o little_a flock_n according_a to_o which_o s._n austin_n say_v 128._o that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o in_o one_o abel_n and_o in_o one_o enoch_n multitude_n then_o shall_v be_v rather_o a_o presumption_n of_o the_o false_a then_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o impurity_n rather_o than_o of_o purity_n for_o asmuch_o also_o as_o man_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v prone_a by_o nature_n to_o evil_a and_o tend_v not_o unto_o good_a unless_o he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v draw_v by_o force_n unto_o it_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o number_n of_o painims_n they_o will_v set_v against_o we_o in_o all_o nation_n almost_o many_o against_o one_o and_o again_o all_o nation_n against_o one_o only_a nation_n yea_o and_o in_o that_o nation_n itself_o all_o the_o family_n of_o one_o time_n against_o one_o or_o two_o as_o namely_o in_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n those_o which_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 6._o mock_v he_o &_o his_o religion_n likewise_o amongst_o this_o choose_a people_n of_o god_n 29.10_o the_o samaritan_n bare_a themselves_o against_o juda_n for_o there_o be_v ten_o tribe_n against_o two_o 22.8_o and_o in_o juda_n &_o israel_n the_o idolater_n gain_v against_o the_o people_n of_o god_n for_o elias_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o 4._o &_o against_o the_o good_a prophet_n micheas_n there_o arise_v up_o four_o hundred_o false_a &_o the_o prophet_n cry_v that_o all_o the_o people_n be_v deceive_v even_o from_o the_o king_n 18.18_o to_o the_o priest_n &_o prophet_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n also_o there_o shall_v be_v as_o few_o in_o that_o place_n for_o even_o at_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v say_v 53._o who_o have_v believe_v our_o word_n &_o to_o who_o have_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v reveil_v &_o we_o read_v that_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o small_a number_n of_o person_n &_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o hold_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o one_o instant_a it_o consist_v in_o the_o virgin_n marie_n alone_o in_o the_o great_a flower_n of_o it_o we_o read_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o constantine_n 16._o his_o son_n be_v of_o the_o same_o name_n favour_v the_o arrian_n there_o be_v so_o few_o sound_n professor_n amongst_o the_o christian_n that_o the_o emperor_n reproach_v they_o that_o four_o or_o five_o person_n with_o their_o athanasius_n will_v trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o who_o liberius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n answer_v that_o his_o solitude_n or_o fewness_n do_v no_o whit_n diminish_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o end_n we_o be_v advertise_v that_o when_o that_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v before_o which_o that_o son_n of_o perdition_n must_v seduce_v the_o world_n he_o shall_v find_v neither_o faith_n nor_o charity_n on_o the_o earth_n 24._o and_o that_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n &_o lot_n etc_n etc_n the_o eclipse_n they_o of_o this_o moon_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v universal_a all_o the_o whole_a earth_n be_v put_v between_o the_o church_n and_o the_o sun_n &_o therefore_o if_o we_o have_v no_o other_o direction_n in_o these_o darkeness_n than_o the_o multitude_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o part_n with_o that_o little_a number_n moreover_o the_o christian_n which_o reject_v the_o pope_n in_o asia_n and_o in_o africa_n be_v a_o great_a many_o more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o other_o if_o the_o pope_n hold_v they_o for_o pure_a church_n then_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n a_o heretic_n for_o she_o condemn_v they_o and_o excommunicate_v they_o for_o diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n if_o not_o than_o multitude_n which_o be_v a_o common_a argument_n to_o the_o impure_a church_n themselves_o can_v not_o be_v allege_v for_o a_o mark_n of_o purity_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o praise_n god_o for_o the_o blessing_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o his_o word_n make_v the_o same_o to_o fructify_v and_o increase_v to_o hundred_o and_o to_o thousand_o likewise_o we_o pray_v that_o as_o he_o have_v already_o draw_v a_o part_n of_o christendom_n from_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o antichrist_n so_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o continue_v it_o more_o &_o more_o but_o we_o say_v that_o if_o in_o certain_a place_n it_o seem_v that_o god_n do_v retire_v but_o few_o 3.12_o as_o the_o pastor_n that_o save_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n a_o ear_n of_o his_o sheep_n as_o say_v the_o prophet_n amos_n or_o according_a to_o jeremy_n 3.16_o take_v one_o of_o one_o town_n &_o two_o of_o one_o tribe_n for_o to_o retire_v they_o into_o the_o restauration_n of_o his_o church_n yet_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o must_v not_o call_v the_o truth_n into_o doubt_n for_o asmuch_o as_o the_o self_n same_o truth_n have_v foretell_v we_o this_o &_o the_o great_a number_n be_v no_o mark_n of_o purity_n &_o verity_n nor_o the_o little_a number_n of_o falsehood_n and_o heresy_n place_n now_o follow_v the_o succession_n of_o place_n and_o of_o person_n which_o they_o allege_v against_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n which_o we_o require_v in_o the_o church_n as_o concern_v the_o place_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o this_o be_v to_o play_v the_o jew_n to_o enclose_v orbem_fw-la in_o urbe_fw-la that_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o one_o city_n for_o the_o church_n be_v not_o any_o long_o tie_v to_o jerusalem_n but_o we_o see_v every_o day_n that_o god_n call_v his_o people_n even_o those_o which_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v his_o people_n and_o contrariwise_o he_o have_v permit_v by_o his_o righteous_a will_n that_o many_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o turk_n etc_n as_o that_o of_o ephesus_n found_v by_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n john_n and_o that_o of_o bonne_fw-fr in_o barbary_n where_o s._n austin_n preach_v etc_n etc_n and_o further_o that_o be_v say_v express_o versiculum_fw-la that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o a_o long_a time_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v retire_v herself_o into_o the_o wilderness_n as_o the_o common_a gloze_n itself_o do_v expound_v moreover_o the_o church_n be_v a_o city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o union_n of_o citizen_n under_o the_o just_a government_n of_o christ_n now_o between_o a_o city_n and_o a_o town_n there_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o the_o one_o consist_v in_o wall_n &_o the_o other_o in_o the_o union_n of_o the_o people_n govern_v under_o the_o same_o law_n &_o therefore_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o vey_v with_o camillus_n be_v a_o banish_a man_n 49._o though_o the_o town_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o themistocles_n say_v that_o athens_n be_v in_o ship_n which_o the_o roman_n have_v teach_v the_o poor_a carthagians_n to_o their_o cost_n when_o they_o make_v their_o city_n to_o be_v carry_v out_o of_o their_o town_n to_o be_v short_a the_o pope_n then selue_o have_v maintain_v for_o lxxx_o year_n together_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v her_o sea_n in_o auignion_n although_o they_o have_v forsake_v rome_n moreover_o this_o argument_n be_v common_a to_o the_o church_n greek_n syrian_n armenian _n ethiopian_n etc_n etc_n who_o the_o pope_n condemn_v in_o many_o point_n of_o doctrine_n to_o conclude_v if_o ever_o there_o be_v church_n that_o may_v allege_v succession_n of_o place_n it_o be_v jerusalem_n for_o of_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n will_v evermore_o dwell_v in_o this_o temple_n 7._o also_o i_o have_v choose_v and_o sanctify_v this_o house_n to_o the_o end_n that_o my_o name_n may_v
most_o famous_a place_n and_o that_o be_v shall_v work_v strange_a sign_n and_o wonder_n we_o conclude_v on_o the_o contrary_a part_n that_o antiquity_n multitude_n succession_n and_o miracle_n be_v rather_o at_o this_o day_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n &_o of_o that_o whore_n then_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o who_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o this_o one_o mark_n he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n hear_v my_o voice_n he_o that_o be_v my_o disciple_n abide_v in_o my_o word_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o undoubted_a touchstone_n to_o try_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n chap._n 4._o our_o adversary_n do_v thereupon_o object_v unto_o we_o that_o doctrine_n as_o a_o common_a argument_n and_o that_o every_o one_o say_v that_o he_o have_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n on_o his_o side_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v allege_v as_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o common_a brag_n of_o all_o heretic_n but_o it_o be_v not_o always_o a_o common_a mark_n but_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o pure_a church_n for_o both_o the_o true_a christian_n and_o heretic_n may_v have_v antiquity_n multitude_n succession_n and_o miracle_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v but_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o sound_n and_o catholic_a church_n that_o can_v have_v truth_n &_o true_a doctrine_n which_o consist_v in_o faith_n and_o charity_n forasmuch_o as_o she_o be_v one_o and_o if_o the_o other_o boast_n of_o it_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o sound_n the_o which_o by_o and_o by_o vanish_v if_o it_o be_v once_o put_v to_o the_o touch_n likewise_o we_o see_v common_o that_o they_o which_o plead_v together_o pretend_v every_o one_o that_o right_a be_v on_o their_o side_n in_o mean_a time_n who_o will_v say_v that_o see_v both_o twain_o say_v they_o have_v right_a that_o there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o dispute_v of_o the_o right_a but_o only_o that_o he_o which_o be_v in_o possession_n shall_v keep_v it_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v so_o he_o shall_v make_v himself_o a_o laugh_a stock_n &_o shall_v often_o time_n give_v authority_n &_o title_n to_o the_o unjust_a possessor_n against_o the_o right_a owner_n for_o beside_o the_o opinion_n of_o party_n there_o be_v advocate_n to_o debate_v the_o right_n &_o law_n that_o must_v judge_v thereof_o now_o for_o to_o decide_v the_o matter_n whereof_o there_o be_v question_n thank_n be_v to_o god_n we_o have_v a_o good_a judge_n the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v of_o the_o pure_a service_n of_o god_n now_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o judge_v how_o god_n must_v be_v serve_v much_o less_o for_o a_o poor_a peasant_n to_o make_v book_n how_o prince_n shall_v be_v dutiful_o serve_v for_o between_o man_n &_o man_n there_o be_v always_o a_o proportion_n but_o between_o man_n and_o god_n there_o can_v be_v none_o for_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o which_o ought_v only_o to_o be_v hear_v in_o this_o matter_n &_o not_o man_n who_o ordinance_n of_o the_o service_n towards_o god_n be_v for_o their_o own_o turn_n &_o serve_v only_o for_o their_o own_o fantasy_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o god_n himself_o will_v be_v the_o only_a law_n giver_n unto_o his_o people_n 7.21_o give_v they_o a_o law_n which_o contain_v whatsoever_o he_o require_v of_o man_n aswell_o in_o general_a as_o in_o particular_a and_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o man_n invention_n he_o express_o forbid_v they_o to_o add_v any_o thing_n thereto_o or_o to_o take_v any_o thing_n therefrom_o for_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v be_v serve_v according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n and_o not_o according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o man_n eye_n which_o he_o have_v knit_v up_o for_o we_o in_o one_o word_n 30._o i_o will_v obedience_n &_o not_o sacrifice_v the_o priest_n be_v man_n &_o very_o oftentimes_o they_o can_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o this_o but_o the_o example_n of_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n may_v be_v a_o horror_n unto_o every_o one_o who_o for_o offer_v strange_a fire_n unto_o the_o lord_n &_o not_o be_v command_v they_o be_v consume_v with_o fire_n send_v from_o heaven_n and_o while_o man_n have_v love_v their_o own_o invention_n they_o have_v load_v the_o people_n with_o tradition_n ceremony_n and_o gloss_n and_o whereas_o the_o law_n be_v give_v to_o convince_v they_o of_o sin_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v seek_v mercy_n in_o christ_n they_o have_v find_v out_o other_o mean_n for_o their_o salvation_n but_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n which_o he_o have_v send_v from_o time_n to_o time_n between_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o gospel_n have_v always_o hold_v they_o to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o testimony_n say_v esai_n 8.20_o hide_v my_o law_n amongst_o my_o disciple_n and_o if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n the_o morning_n light_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o because_o they_o observe_v not_o this_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v turn_v to_o they_o into_o a_o curse_n &_o god_n be_v ready_a to_o make_v a_o divorce_n with_o his_o people_n &_o therefore_o to_o cut_v of_o at_o one_o blow_n all_o their_o madness_n 2._o malachi_n recommend_v to_o the_o church_n the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o ordinance_n give_v from_o moses_n until_o the_o come_n of_o elias_n that_o be_v of_o john_n the_o forerunner_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v then_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n even_o until_o the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n be_v give_v whereof_o the_o prophet_n be_v expositor_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v distinguish_v the_o false_a service_n from_o the_o true_a without_o have_v any_o recourse_n to_o the_o long_a possession_n thereof_o which_o have_v but_o small_a authority_n to_o give_v power_n to_o ishmael_n himself_o against_o israel_n to_o be_v short_a he_o of_o who_o it_o be_v only_o say_v hear_v he_o to_o teach_v we_o by_o his_o example_n have_v give_v so_o great_a authority_n to_o the_o law_n that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o people_n thereby_o to_o judge_v whether_o he_o be_v christ_n or_o no_o 17._o search_v say_v he_o diligent_o the_o scripture_n for_o you_o think_v that_o by_o they_o you_o shall_v have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o they_o be_v they_o which_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n attribute_v so_o much_o to_o the_o lanw_n 24._o that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o world_n to_o judge_v by_o the_o same_o law_n whether_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n a_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n or_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o why_o so_o because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n nor_o of_o esai_n nor_o of_o any_o man_n but_o even_o he_o who_o send_v he_o now_o by_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v lose_v nothing_o but_o rather_o have_v the_o great_a authority_n 2._o god_n which_o have_v speak_v to_o our_o father_n say_v the_o apostle_n sundry_a time_n &_o in_o diverse_a manner_n have_v in_o these_o last_o time_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o own_o son_n this_o son_n be_v god_n himself_o this_o be_v that_o essential_a word_n this_o be_v he_o by_o who_o come_v the_o church_n wait_v for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o all_o thing_n 4.25_o the_o word_n then_o that_o proceed_v from_o he_o aught_o to_o have_v a_o infinite_a &_o absolute_a authority_n &_o thereunto_o must_v man_n add_v nothing_o for_o it_o be_v the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o the_o infinite_a father_n and_o can_v teach_v we_o whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o see_v he_o have_v so_o love_v we_o that_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o die_v for_o we_o he_o will_v not_o then_o hide_v from_o we_o the_o word_n of_o life_n to_o be_v short_a he_o come_v to_o lighten_v we_o in_o darkness_n and_o have_v promise_v never_o to_o forsake_v we_o he_o have_v then_o leave_v we_o some_o light_n to_o guide_v we_o and_o see_v he_o be_v that_o same_o light_n itself_o it_o be_v such_o a_o light_n as_o we_o follow_v it_o we_o can_v be_v deceive_v now_o this_o then_o be_v that_o same_o write_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o true_a image_n of_o that_o essential_a word_n in_o which_o he_o have_v imprint_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o all_o that_o be_v expedient_a for_o our_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n receive_v this_o word_n from_o his_o mouth_n to_o preach_v the_o same_o to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o herein_o they_o be_v true_a and_o faithful_a ambassador_n again_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n through_o which_o they_o preach_v indite_v it_o and_o teach_v they_o what_o they_o
shall_v say_v to_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o posterity_n so_o as_o we_o have_v it_o there_o register_v by_o four_o swear_a notary_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o expound_v in_o many_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n final_o these_o register_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n have_v gather_v they_o together_o by_o the_o common_a care_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v keep_v the_o which_o have_v witness_v that_o this_o word_n proceed_v from_o they_o and_o thereto_o have_v put_v to_o their_o seal_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o scripture_n may_v be_v make_v equal_a unto_o they_o and_o to_o take_v away_o also_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o heretic_n which_o every_o where_o allege_v it_o and_o bring_v in_o to_o serve_v every_o turn_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n have_v bring_v they_o into_o one_o book_n which_o they_o call_v the_o canon_n that_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n see_v then_o that_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n we_o have_v now_o as_o be_v under_o the_o law_n one_o rule_n to_o judge_v the_o right_n from_o the_o crooked_a a_o squire_n to_o direct_v our_o building_n a_o compass_n to_o guide_v our_o bark_n a_o law_n to_o judge_v controversy_n and_o a_o god_n in_o his_o word_n to_o determine_v all_o matter_n which_o shall_v arise_v in_o the_o church_n all_o that_o be_v agreeable_a to_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o god_n for_o that_o it_o be_v his_o own_o word_n all_o that_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o this_o word_n be_v of_o man_n and_o no_o man_n have_v any_o voice_n in_o the_o church_n to_o make_v any_o law_n concern_v the_o service_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o man_n alone_o god_n and_o man_n have_v only_o this_o power_n of_o who_o it_o be_v only_o say_v hear_v he_o 17._o albina_n then_o that_o be_v over_o and_o beside_o this_o aught_o to_o have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o church_n by_o this_o word_n thus_o limit_v within_o the_o book_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o primative_a church_n have_v take_v away_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o tradition_n which_o heretic_n have_v make_v to_o pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n allow_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o they_o have_v find_v contain_v in_o the_o foresay_a book_n by_o the_o same_o also_o they_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o heresy_n which_o spring_v up_o of_o the_o naughty_a and_o unsound_a interpretation_n thereof_o to_o be_v short_a they_o never_o complain_v when_o they_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o heretic_n who_o agree_v of_o this_o judge_n account_v their_o matter_n win_v but_o rather_o when_o they_o vanquish_v they_o which_o refuse_v the_o same_o word_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v a_o judge_n to_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o god._n our_o adversary_n always_o cry_v with_o open_a mouth_n the_o father_n father_n father_n but_o behold_v whereby_o the_o father_n will_v be_v judge_v and_o before_o who_o they_o will_v plead_v this_o controversy_n say_v s._n august_n donatistas_n require_v a_o judge_n let_v christ_n then_o be_v judge_n himself_o and_o tell_v we_o himself_o wherefore_o he_o die_v let_v the_o apostle_n also_o be_v judge_n together_o with_o he_o for_o in_o the_o apostle_n also_o christ_n himself_o speak_v it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o spare_v his_o own_o son_n etc_n etc_n but_o have_v give_v he_o to_o the_o death_n for_o we_o see_v then_o the_o judge_n before_o who_o he_o call_v the_o pelagian_n from_o who_o our_o adversary_n have_v borrow_v their_o doctrine_n against_o the_o donatist_n his_o ordinary_a word_n be_v 4._o we_o have_v find_v christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n there_o also_o must_v we_o find_v the_o church_n also_o let_v it_o not_o be_v hear_v any_o more_o between_o we_o i_o say_v this_o thou_o say_v that_o but_o rather_o see_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v for_o we_o have_v say_v he_o the_o book_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o which_o we_o both_o give_v consent_n we_o both_o believe_v and_o keep_v again_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o the_o epistle_n of_o bishop_n give_v place_n one_o to_o a_o other_o and_o counsel_n be_v amend_v and_o correct_v one_o by_o a_o other_o but_o that_o must_v correct_v all_o also_o where_o shall_v we_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o israel_n these_o mountain_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o altar_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n when_o any_o man_n shall_v preach_v according_a to_o that_o from_o thence_o take_v taste_v thereof_o and_o all_o that_o be_v not_o from_o thence_o cast_v it_o away_o for_o fear_v of_o stray_v in_o the_o mist_n and_o when_o the_o donatist_n allege_v saint_n cyprian_n unto_o he_o of_o who_o notwithstanding_o he_o make_v a_o great_a account_n in_o all_o his_o work_n and_o special_o through_o who_o he_o may_v have_v overcome_v they_o in_o many_o matter_n i_o say_v he_o allow_v not_o the_o write_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n for_o canonical_a and_o yet_o herein_o i_o do_v he_o no_o wrong_n for_o not_o in_o vain_a be_v this_o so_o healthful_a a_o canon_n make_v donatist_n in_o which_o be_v comprehend_v the_o book_n which_o we_o dare_v not_o judge_v and_o through_o which_o notwithstanding_o we_o judge_v of_o all_o book_n as_o well_o of_o infidel_n as_o of_o christian_n that_o which_o i_o find_v there_o agreeable_a with_o scripture_n i_o accept_v it_o with_o praise_n that_o which_o i_o find_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n by_o his_o good_a leave_n i_o reject_v it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v he_o in_o another_o place_n but_o that_o now_o he_o see_v all_o more_o clear_a and_o bright_a then_o when_o he_o be_v conversant_a in_o darkness_n that_o he_o will_v rather_o be_v glad_a to_o know_v how_o comfortable_a it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o in_o the_o write_n of_o christian_a orator_n and_o learned_a preacher_n a_o man_n may_v find_v thing_n to_o be_v reprove_v and_o that_o in_o the_o write_n of_o those_o poor_a fisher_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o apostle_n a_o man_n shall_v find_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o they_o allege_v not_o therefore_o to_o i_o say_v he_o in_o this_o case_n their_o write_n but_o the_o law_n the_o prophet_n the_o psalm_n the_o gospel_n and_o the_o apostle_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o i_o hold_v the_o church_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o and_o be_v not_o tie_v unto_o any_o certain_a place_n and_o the_o rule_n which_o he_o give_v we_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o cyprian_a canoni_fw-la he_o have_v also_o give_v out_o of_o his_o own_o and_o out_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o the_o place_n also_o repeat_v by_o gratian_n in_o his_o decretal_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o gratian_n to_o get_v credit_n to_o himself_o give_v no_o less_o authority_n to_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n then_o to_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n impudent_o corrupt_v a_o place_n take_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n 2.18_o where_o he_o speak_v the_o quite_o contrary_a but_o this_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o confutation_n and_o alfonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n himself_o who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a pillar_n of_o the_o papacy_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o fault_n &_o very_o lively_o reprove_v he_o for_o it_o the_o arrian_n in_o a_o more_o high_a matter_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n will_v escape_v by_o the_o council_n but_o he_o always_o draw_v they_o to_o this_o let_v we_o not_o allege_v say_v he_o dispute_v against_o maximine_n their_o bish_n neither_o thou_o the_o council_n of_o ariminium_n nor_o i_o the_o council_n of_o nicee_n 14._o for_o neither_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o there_o nor_o thou_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o here_o but_o let_v we_o dispute_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v common_a witness_n to_o we_o both_o cause_n against_o cause_n and_o reason_n against_o reason_n etc_n etc_n all_o his_o book_n be_v full_a of_o such_o place_n especial_o against_o the_o manichee_n who_o deny_v one_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n 5._o who_o vanquish_v the_o sadducee_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o resurrection_n special_o by_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n because_o they_o reject_v all_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v he_o that_o so_o astonish_v all_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o he_o put_v they_o to_o utter_v silence_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o condemn_v he_o not_o for_o a_o heretic_n who_o they_o have_v already_o so_o sore_o suspect_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o see_v what_o other_o do_v hold_v concern_v this_o matter_n 8._o basil_n the_o great_a will_v that_o we_o examine_v all_o doctrine_n
by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reject_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o they_o as_o enemy_n to_o our_o salvation_n and_o against_o all_o heretic_n he_o demand_v that_o only_a the_o scripture_n be_v umpire_n chrysostom_n call_v it_o the_o most_o exact_a balance_n spiri_fw-la the_o squire_n the_o rule_n and_o judge_v of_o all_o doctrine_n and_o in_o a_o certain_a other_o place_n the_o same_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o christ_n be_v of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o without_o it_o we_o may_v not_o allege_v the_o spirit_n 1._o irence_n call_v it_o the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n tertullian_n say_v take_v from_o heretic_n the_o book_n of_o ethnic_n and_o win_v so_o much_o of_o they_o that_o they_o will_v rest_v upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v also_o let_v the_o shop_n of_o hermogenes_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o they_o can_v let_v they_o fear_v the_o curse_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o they_o that_o add_v to_o or_o diminish_v to_o be_v short_a they_o all_o drive_v to_o this_o point_n that_o to_o examine_v all_o doctrine_n to_o maintain_v the_o true_a catholic_n to_o vanquish_v the_o false_a we_o must_v have_v no_o other_o touchstone_n no_o other_o buckler_n or_o sword_n but_o this_o and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n in_o the_o third_o council_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v forbid_v to_o read_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o imperial_a law_n distinguish_v catholic_n from_o heretic_n 14._o by_o the_o apostolical_a and_o evangelical_a doctrine_n and_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n have_v assemble_v that_o famous_a council_n of_o nicee_n wherein_o there_o be_v three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o father_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o arrius_n he_o prescribe_v they_o this_o rule_n we_o have_v say_v he_o the_o book_n of_o the_o evangelist_n apostle_n and_o prophet_n which_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o holy_a law_n by_o these_o book_n than_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o resolve_v all_o doubt_n and_o question_n and_o this_o rule_n also_o be_v there_o so_o exact_o keep_v that_o one_o minister_n alone_o paphnutius_fw-la by_o name_n allege_v the_o scripture_n make_v all_o the_o rest_n to_o change_v their_o opinion_n who_o without_o any_o ground_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o certain_a politic_a and_o humane_a consideration_n be_v ready_a to_o have_v abolish_v the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n to_o be_v short_a gerson_n and_o panormitane_n doctr_n even_o when_o the_o pope_n thunderbolt_n and_o lightning_n excommunication_n be_v most_o hot_a dare_v yet_o say_v and_o write_v that_o one_o poor_a lay_v man_n allege_v a_o text_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o pope_n yea_o and_o before_o a_o general_a council_n err_v through_o ignorance_n or_o of_o malice_n against_o the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v think_v no_o more_o strange_a then_o if_o they_o have_v say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o have_v more_o weight_n than_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o world_n together_o who_o be_v nothing_o else_o with_o all_o their_o knowledge_n but_o ignorance_n and_o vanity_n i_o have_v be_v long_o in_o this_o point_n because_o now_o a_o day_n they_o always_o speak_v unto_o we_o of_o the_o father_n and_o i_o pray_v the_o reader_n to_o take_v a_o little_a pain_n to_o read_v the_o place_n themselves_o because_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o yet_o more_o plain_a and_o full_a than_o the_o desire_n that_o i_o have_v to_o be_v short_a suffer_v i_o to_o write_v at_o large_a 8.20_o with_o isaiah_n the_o prophet_n therefore_o we_o call_v our_o adversary_n to_o the_o law_n 5.39_o with_o abraham_n to_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n with_o christ_n to_o the_o scripture_n with_o all_o the_o father_n and_o christian_a doctor_n to_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n if_o this_o judge_n then_o which_o heretofore_o have_v decide_v all_o controversy_n &_o which_o have_v be_v so_o reverent_o accept_v even_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o heretic_n themselves_o can_v not_o please_v they_o either_o they_o must_v allege_v great_a cause_n of_o refusal_n against_o it_o or_o else_o all_o the_o world_n will_v hold_v their_o doctrine_n more_o suspect_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v salvation_n their_o first_o cause_n of_o refuse_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v imperfect_a but_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o if_o they_o will_v require_v any_o other_o perfection_n than_o a_o doctrine_n sufficient_a to_o salvation_n if_o they_o content_v themselves_o to_o be_v save_v saint_n john_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o place_n that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v be_v sufficient_a to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v omit_v s._n augustine_n pronounce_v that_o he_o be_v rash_a which_o presume_v to_o guess_v what_o they_o be_v saint_n paul_n also_o say_v 9_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o wise_a to_o salvation_n that_o they_o comprehend_v sufficient_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n behold_v then_o sufficient_o wherewithal_o to_o save_v they_o if_o they_o will_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o salvation_n but_o call_v the_o scripture_n imperfect_a because_o they_o find_v not_o there_o the_o determination_n of_o certain_a curious_a question_n which_o they_o handle_v in_o their_o school_n and_o yet_o they_o do_v the_o scripture_n wrong_v for_o there_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o condemnation_n moreover_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o from_o whence_o this_o imperfection_n can_v come_v be_v this_o of_o christ_n nay_o rather_o he_o be_v perfection_n itself_o and_o see_v he_o come_v to_o accomplish_v our_o salvation_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v he_o of_o who_o the_o church_n must_v wait_v for_o the_o revelation_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o then_o can_v be_v perfect_o wise_a and_o will_v be_v perfect_o good_a teach_v his_o church_n whatsoever_o may_v belong_v unto_o her_o salvation_n or_o be_v this_o imperfection_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o they_o receive_v this_o word_n of_o life_n from_o his_o mouth_n and_o after_o he_o send_v unto_o they_o his_o holy_a spirit_n 2._o to_o record_n it_o and_o to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n thereof_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o preach_v salvation_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o as_o ireneus_fw-la say_v that_o which_o they_o preach_v by_o mouth_n they_o have_v leave_v unto_o we_o by_o write_v to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o whole_a fault_n than_o come_v not_o that_o way_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o the_o whole_a imperfection_n be_v in_o man_n who_o not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n their_o imperfection_n they_o esteem_v it_o imperfect_a as_o they_o that_o have_v swill_v in_o the_o snow_n water_n from_o the_o mountain_n call_v those_o imperfect_a which_o have_v not_o wide_o and_o hang_a throat_n like_o themselves_o for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o their_o superfluous_a imperfection_n we_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o invocation_n of_o one_o god_n alone_o by_o mean_n of_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o but_o they_o will_v find_v there_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n we_o there_o find_v that_o purgatory_n cleanse_v be_v in_o the_o only_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o will_v find_v there_o that_o purgatory_n which_o they_o have_v take_v out_o of_o virgil_n and_o plato_n we_o there_o find_v one_o only_a mediator_n but_o they_o will_v find_v as_o many_o there_o as_o there_o be_v saint_n in_o their_o calendar_n they_o call_v these_o thing_n imperfection_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v rather_o so_o many_o infection_n in_o their_o church_n furthermore_o i_o demand_v be_v it_o that_o a_o man_n think_v that_o there_o want_v something_o who_o shall_v be_v so_o hardy_a after_o such_o a_o workman_n to_o put_v to_o his_o hand_n to_o make_v it_o perfect_a if_o a_o man_n say_v the_o doctor_n why_o then_o quite_o contrary_a find_v it_o only_o perfect_a &_o in_o it_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n they_o acknowledge_v the_o imperfection_n both_o of_o other_o and_o of_o themselves_o 8._o if_o they_o will_v bring_v in_o the_o church_n through_o her_o tradition_n why_o it_o be_v she_o that_o have_v teach_v we_o to_o cut_v of_o by_o the_o book_n of_o this_o canon_n all_o that_o we_o find_v not_o therein_o and_o further_o she_o be_v forbid_v to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o her_o tradition_n and_o command_v to_o be_v a_o scholar_n of_o this_o word_n and_o we_o know_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o scholar_n to_o usurp_v above_o
of_o all_o our_o thought_n and_o that_o we_o conclude_v that_o if_o we_o see_v nothing_o the_o fault_n thereof_o be_v in_o our_o eye_n and_o not_o in_o the_o light_n they_o allege_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v doubtful_a because_o that_o satan_n allege_v it_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n that_o a_o man_n may_v not_o reject_v by_o this_o argument_n for_o all_o law_n be_v subject_a to_o be_v allege_v both_o by_o good_a &_o bad_a but_o let_v they_o also_o mark_v that_o by_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n stop_v his_o mouth_n also_o your_o saviour_n christ_n have_v speak_v in_o parable_n and_o similitude_n we_o know_v that_o similitude_n be_v to_o make_v clear_a and_o not_o to_o darken_v and_o i_o make_v their_o own_o conscience_n judge_n whether_o those_o parable_n of_o christ_n so_o expound_v as_o we_o have_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n tend_v to_o any_o other_o end_n when_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o who_o be_v our_o neighbour_n he_o make_v it_o plain_a by_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o man_n descend_v from_o jericho_n what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v by_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o sour_a 15._o what_o the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v by_o the_o prodigal_a child_n and_o so_o likewise_o of_o other_o i_o ask_v if_o by_o these_o parable_n we_o may_v judge_v more_o clear_o or_o more_o dark_o &_o whether_o all_o the_o gloss_n or_o long_a commentary_n of_o the_o pharisee_n be_v able_a so_o clear_o to_o expound_v this_o matter_n but_o they_o will_v say_v you_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o there_o be_v many_o dark_a place_n for_o s._n peter_n himself_o say_v 3.16_o that_o there_o be_v such_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n nay_o but_o rather_o we_o may_v say_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v only_o certain_a place_n dark_a it_o follow_v contrariwise_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o dark_a for_o this_o be_v a_o evil_a argument_n to_o reason_n from_o some_o to_o all_o and_o he_o that_o say_v that_o upon_o a_o garment_n there_o be_v black_a spot_v he_o say_v by_o consequence_n that_o that_o garment_n be_v not_o all_o black_a and_o as_o concern_v those_o we_o say_v that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o to_o give_v they_o such_o light_n as_o they_o need_v not_o dwell_v any_o more_o in_o darkness_n unless_o it_o be_v those_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v in_o their_o understanding_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v 4._o to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v perish_v &_o that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o shine_v unto_o they_o 3.16_o or_o as_o saint_n peter_n say_v in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n which_o they_o allege_v to_o the_o unstable_a and_o unlearned_a which_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n this_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n with_o who_o we_o conclude_v this_o point_n there_o be_v say_v saint_n augustine_n handle_v this_o matter_n 9_o certain_a hard_a place_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v expound_v in_o most_o express_a word_n in_o other_o place_n whereby_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v wonderful_o measure_v and_o temper_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o clear_a place_n shall_v serve_v healthful_o to_o satisfy_v the_o hunger_n of_o the_o reader_n and_o those_o dark_a place_n shall_v increase_v their_o appetite_n to_o take_v away_o all_o contempt_n but_o in_o that_o that_o be_v speak_v clear_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v find_v all_o thing_n which_o contain_v faith_n and_o the_o way_n to_o live_v well_o to_o wit_n hope_v and_o charity_n and_o he_o that_o will_v have_v more_o example_n hereof_o in_o the_o foresay_a place_n he_o allege_v more_o saint_n ambrose_n there_o be_v say_v he_o much_o obscurity_n in_o the_o prophetical_a write_n 8._o he_o speak_v namely_o of_o the_o prophet_n but_o if_o thou_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o own_o understanding_n thou_o shall_v gather_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o dark_a place_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n itself_o shall_v be_v that_o that_o shall_v open_v it_o unto_o thou_o the_o most_o obscure_a and_o dark_a then_o that_o be_v therein_o may_v be_v make_v plain_a by_o itself_o s._n basill_n if_o we_o be_v command_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v not_o how_o 4._o let_v we_o take_v the_o lord_n for_o our_o guide_n who_o say_v unto_o we_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o let_v we_o follow_v the_o apostle_n who_o ask_v himself_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o they_o and_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o one_o place_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o understand_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v in_o another_o 9_o this_o be_v that_o which_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n dispute_v against_o the_o pope_n 300._o year_n ago_o that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v sufficient_a perfect_a and_o plain_a of_o itself_o immediate_o to_o direct_v we_o to_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o to_o turn_v we_o away_o from_o the_o path_n of_o misery_n but_o to_o they_o which_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o light_n but_o darkness_n i_o fear_v that_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o allege_v plain_a place_n out_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n the_o mischief_n be_v that_o we_o find_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n in_o any_o place_n neither_o the_o mass_n nor_o purgatory_n neither_o the_o papacy_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o one_o man_n alone_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o such_o other_o invention_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n and_o therefore_o we_o accuse_v god_n word_n to_o be_v dark_a to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v fetch_v these_o goodly_a doctrine_n from_o thence_o by_o mean_a of_o some_o cold_a allegory_n that_o wheresoever_o this_o light_n shine_v not_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v know_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n but_o yet_o see_v a_o far_a matter_n than_o the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v so_o far_o of_o that_o they_o will_v accept_v the_o scripture_n for_o their_o judge_n that_o they_o themselves_o will_v be_v judge_n over_o the_o scripture_n if_o the_o church_n say_v they_o have_v not_o keep_v the_o scripture_n scripture_n and_o witness_v of_o they_o they_o have_v be_v of_o no_o more_o authority_n than_o any_o other_o write_v therefore_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n over_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n over_o the_o church_n first_o i_o demand_v what_o that_o church_n be_v which_o have_v keep_v the_o scripture_n whether_o this_o be_v only_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o the_o jewish_a church_n also_o now_o we_o know_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n unto_o we_o by_o the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n call_v they_o the_o book_n keeper_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o be_v so_o curious_a that_o they_o will_v enter_v every_o tittle_n and_o point_n both_o the_o accent_n and_o letter_n and_o make_v a_o register_n of_o they_o therefore_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v judge_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o jesus_n christ_n come_v and_o therefore_o to_o very_o evil_a purpose_n our_o saviour_n christ_n send_v the_o people_n to_o the_o scripture_n who_o may_v more_o safe_o have_v be_v send_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n but_o these_o judge_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o judge_v christ_n to_o death_n &_o the_o scholar_n and_o student_n of_o the_o scripture_n acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o life_n and_o at_o this_o day_n even_o by_o this_o argument_n the_o jew_n shall_v win_v the_o victory_n it_o follow_v then_o whether_o they_o renounce_v this_o sophistry_n or_o whether_o they_o will_v maintain_v it_o that_o they_o renounce_v their_o salvation_n consequent_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o have_v keep_v the_o scripture_n or_o other_o church_n also_o they_o can_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o latin_a church_n alone_o for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n witness_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n gather_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o register_n of_o those_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o which_o the_o same_o apostle_n have_v write_v now_o there_o be_v but_o one_o epistle_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v to_o the_o east_n church_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o gospel_n of_o john_n be_v keep_v at_o ephesit_n and_o that_o of_o saint_n mark_v at_o alexandria_n etc_n etc_n if_o then_o the_o east_n church_n have_v a_o great_a part_n in_o keep_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o
by_o this_o argument_n as_o much_o or_o more_o authority_n over_o the_o scripture_n than_o it_o i_o ask_v of_o the_o indifferent_a amongst_o they_o who_o shall_v judge_v but_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o they_o judge_v the_o scripture_n who_o shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n over_o they_o if_o the_o east_n church_n shall_v than_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v lose_v her_o cause_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o this_o shall_v he_o in_o another_o respect_n then_o of_o keep_v the_o scripture_n if_o they_o say_v it_o be_v by_o their_o pretend_a prerogative_n of_o saint_n peter_n seat_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o mark_v peter_n sea_n which_o do_v take_v upon_o it_o to_o judge_v the_o scripture_n be_v yet_o subject_n to_o the_o scripture_n itself_o furthermore_o i_o pray_v every_o man_n to_o examine_v this_o conclusion_n the_o church_n of_o god_o have_v keep_v the_o scripture_n the_o church_n bear_v witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la she_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n the_o edict_n of_o a_o prince_n be_v register_v in_o all_o his_o country_n the_o law_n be_v gather_v together_o and_o write_v by_o clerk_n all_o contract_n and_o bargain_n be_v subsign_v by_o witness_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o that_o will_v say_v that_o they_o be_v above_o the_o king_n above_o the_o law_n &_o contract_n he_o shall_v make_v himself_o a_o laugh_a stock_n if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v no_o place_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o edict_n of_o some_o prince_n except_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v they_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o have_v this_o privilege_n for_o she_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v learned_a to_o obey_v her_o husband_n without_o any_o examination_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o must_v by_o and_o by_o hold_v her_o peace_n assoon_o as_o she_o hear_v his_o word_n for_o she_o know_v also_o that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o her_o husband_n who_o will_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o like_a that_o of_o prince_n which_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v honest_a and_o profitable_a civil_a or_o uncivil_a but_o if_o they_o be_v so_o stiff_a for_o the_o obtain_v of_o this_o privilege_n yet_o let_v they_o agree_v with_o i_o herein_o that_o this_o be_v that_o assembly_n which_o have_v lift_v up_o itself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_o which_o fear_v to_o be_v discomfit_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n will_v therefore_o moussell_v and_o stop_v up_o his_o mouth_n all_o that_o it_o may_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n augustine_n which_o they_o allege_v make_v nothing_o against_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v before_o i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n constrain_v or_o move_v i_o ni_fw-fr me_fw-it ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la where_o it_o be_v special_o to_o be_v note_v that_o according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o africa_n commoveret_fw-la be_v take_v for_o commovisset_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v move_v i_o thereto_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v not_o such_o a_o style_n 5._o as_o may_v make_v itself_o sufficient_o know_v from_o other_o write_n of_o man_n for_o he_o himself_o instruct_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n in_o many_o place_n much_o less_o mean_v he_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v above_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o examine_v all_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o receive_v such_o &_o such_o book_n for_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n make_v that_o he_o can_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v so_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n who_o name_n they_o do_v bear_v be_v true_a author_n of_o they_o no_o otherwise_o than_o as_z the_o consent_n of_o many_o age_n acknowledge_v such_o and_o such_o book_n to_o be_v cicero_n hypocrates_n and_o plato_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o they_o be_v they_o these_o be_v his_o very_a word_n against_o the_o manichee_n themselves_o who_o deny_v part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o another_o place_n oh_o unhappy_a enemy_n say_v he_o of_o your_o own_o soul_n 2._o what_o scripture_n shall_v be_v have_v in_o price_n if_o the_o evangelical_a and_o apostolical_a be_v not_o of_o what_o book_n shall_v man_n hold_v the_o certain_a author_n if_o a_o man_n doubt_v that_o those_o holy_a book_n which_o the_o church_n hold_v be_v of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v not_o be_v they_o who_o shall_v know_v whether_o the_o book_n of_o plato_n hypocrates_n aristotle_n &_o cicero_n be_v they_o unless_o it_o be_v for_o that_o from_o their_o time_n even_o unto_o we_o always_o man_n have_v be_v persuade_v that_o they_o come_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n etc_n etc_n like_a as_o then_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o book_n of_o manichee_n be_v his_o because_o man_n have_v believe_v that_o they_o come_v thence_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n so_o also_o i_o believe_v the_o book_n of_o s._n matth._n because_o even_o until_o we_o the_o church_n have_v so_o hold_v the_o question_n be_v not_o they_o in_o this_o place_n whether_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v any_o voice_n to_o determine_v matter_n in_o the_o church_n for_o as_o we_o have_v already_o show_v s._n aug._n teach_v we_o that_o in_o a_o m._n place_n but_o only_o whether_o such_o and_o such_o scripture_n be_v the_o apostle_n yea_o or_o no._n for_o the_o heretic_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v such_o authority_n as_o they_o must_v be_v obey_v but_o they_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v they_o because_o that_o if_o they_o have_v once_o allow_v they_o they_o know_v that_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n rest_n in_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n less_o the_o church_n than_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v for_o they_o hold_v that_o manichee_n the_o chief_a of_o their_o sect_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o but_o this_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n not_o yet_o know_v to_o the_o most_o damnable_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o without_o she_o as_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n champion_n of_o our_o time_n say_v herman_n it_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n them_z esop_n fable_n the_o jew_n have_v teach_v the_o gentile_n that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n believe_v it_o better_o they_o the_o jew_n the_o gentile_n have_v keep_v for_o the_o christian_n many_o good_a and_o ancient_a book_n and_o have_v teach_v they_o that_o such_o and_o such_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o they_o have_v not_o give_v any_o credit_n unto_o they_o the_o bookeseller_n will_v teach_v we_o that_o such_o a_o book_n be_v hypocrates_n work_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o physician_n as_o hypocrates_n be_v for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o any_o some_o man_n &_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o book_n this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v say_v long_o ago_o by_o a_o great_a learned_a man_n 19_o that_o the_o church_n be_v true_a or_o undoubted_a but_o as_o we_o say_v by_o occasion_n because_o she_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v simple_o true_a &_o of_o itself_o for_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n itself_o there_o follow_v another_o argument_n that_o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o scripture_n scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n we_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v not_o write_v and_o afterward_o be_v write_v aswell_o by_o god_n own_o finger_n as_o by_o the_o pen_n of_o his_o servant_n inspire_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n as_o we_o have_v before_o declare_v but_o now_o i_o will_v demand_v of_o they_o from_o whence_o they_o fetch_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n if_o from_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n and_o before_o sin_n enter_v immediate_o after_o they_o be_v create_v god_n give_v they_o a_o commandment_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o touch_v the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o we_o must_v not_o dispute_v whether_o they_o have_v authority_n above_o this_o word_n for_o why_o they_o have_v disobey_v it_o all_o the_o world_n from_o man_n to_o beast_n sigh_n and_o groan_n for_o it_o but_o will_v they_o not_o
deny_v that_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n have_v equal_a authority_n with_o this_o commandment_n if_o they_o take_v it_o after_o sin_n enter_v god_n blame_v and_o convince_v our_o first_o parent_n of_o their_o fault_n and_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o after_o he_o promise_v unto_o they_o the_o seed_n which_o shall_v bruise_v the_o head_n of_o the_o serpent_n &_o this_o be_v the_o gospel_n behold_v they_o then_o dead_a in_o sin_n by_o the_o law_n and_o as_o it_o be_v new_a bear_v by_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o come_v in_o who_o they_o hope_v after_o this_o word_n be_v make_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n &_o without_o this_o they_o have_v be_v lose_v with_o all_o their_o posterity_n wherefore_o whether_o we_o fetch_v the_o church_n from_o before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n she_o have_v no_o power_n above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v judge_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a or_o whether_o we_o derive_v it_o after_o yet_o the_o word_n be_v before_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o church_n and_o that_o antecedent_n itself_o shall_v be_v false_a moreover_o this_o be_v a_o ill_a argument_n it_o be_v the_o first_o in_o time_n ergo_fw-la the_o first_o in_o authority_n for_o we_o have_v a_o hundred_o city_n in_o france_n more_o ancient_a than_o our_o first_o king_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o without_o any_o gainsay_n they_o obey_v their_o law_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o itself_o be_v give_v to_o command_v whereas_o the_o church_n be_v place_v in_o the_o world_n but_o to_o obey_v and_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v in_o power_n eternal_a yet_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o it_o must_v be_v last_o in_o this_o action_n because_o that_o before_o he_o command_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v first_o create_v some_o man_n who_o it_o may_v command_v this_o then_o be_v nothing_o but_o plain_a sophistry_n which_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o church_n moreover_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o when_o they_o make_v this_o argument_n whether_o they_o mean_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n comprehend_v all_o the_o state_n and_o particular_n of_o the_o church_n into_o one_o or_o whether_o they_o speak_v of_o particular_a church_n or_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o if_o they_o understand_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o it_o be_v like_a they_o do_v then_o they_o speak_v nothing_o that_o make_v for_o they_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v thing_n far_o differ_v &_o before_o that_o rome_n be_v or_o any_o wolf_n there_o give_v suck_v more_o than_o 700._o year_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o church_n if_o they_o speak_v of_o particular_a church_n the_o cast_v church_n will_v demand_v the_o same_o prerogative_n and_o by_o the_o self_n same_o argument_n they_o will_v set_v themselves_o above_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o be_v before_o they_o in_o time_n as_o every_o man_n know_v if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n yet_o they_o be_v to_o bring_v forth_o the_o title_n and_o right_a thereof_o and_o then_o they_o can_v bring_v forth_o one_o that_o have_v so_o much_o as_o any_o outward_a show_n to_o be_v short_a all_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o manifest_a dotage_n for_o if_o they_o look_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v find_v neither_o rome_n nor_o the_o pope_n neither_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n nor_o consequent_o any_o authority_n above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o look_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o rome_n they_o shall_v there_o find_v the_o word_n the_o law_n the_o prophet_n expositor_n of_o long_a time_n before_o and_o therefore_o a_o authority_n far_o above_o their_o church_n but_o in_o this_o a_o man_n may_v see_v the_o poor_a defence_n of_o their_o church_n when_o for_o the_o establish_n thereof_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v fall_v down_o which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n now_o in_o this_o whole_a disputation_n they_o can_v not_o find_v one_o only_a word_n out_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n for_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o heretic_n so_o monstrous_a which_o dare_v set_v it_o forth_o till_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n where_o it_o be_v first_o set_v out_o by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v the_o question_n move_v concern_v the_o take_n away_o of_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o the_o people_n express_o against_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n there_o can_v not_o one_o place_n be_v find_v out_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o may_v favour_v direct_o or_o indirect_o plain_o or_o dark_o so_o damnable_a a_o sacrilege_n john_n hus_n call_v they_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o know_v well_o that_o that_o be_v full_a against_o they_o then_o first_o they_o begin_v to_o advise_v of_o those_o goodly_a maxim_n or_o ground_n bohem_n which_o they_o have_v maintain_v even_o until_o this_o day_n that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n have_v no_o other_o authority_n then_o that_o which_o the_o church_n give_v it_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o they_o say_v de_fw-fr bene_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o the_o well_o be_v confess_v but_o not_o of_o the_o essence_n or_o be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o such_o shall_v be_v the_o interpretation_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v short_a that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v more_o long_a and_o large_a than_o the_o word_n write_v and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v more_o worthy_a them_z it_o to_o which_o some_o have_v since_o add_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v in_o better_a case_n if_o there_o be_v no_o gospel_n write_v these_o be_v the_o intolerable_a blasphemy_n which_o spring_v up_o in_o this_o council_n 2._o who_o also_o be_v author_n of_o one_o other_o goodly_a canon_n forsooth_o that_o overthrow_v all_o christianity_n that_o we_o must_v not_o keep_v faith_n or_o promise_n with_o heretic_n john_n hus_n notwithstanding_o press_v they_o yet_o somewhat_o more_o near_o though_o it_o be_v so_o say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o which_o you_o shall_v never_o have_v i_o to_o agree_v show_v i_o yet_o that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v ever_o so_o that_o it_o ever_o so_o ordain_v or_o so_o interpret_v name_v i_o one_o only_a ancient_a doctor_n which_o be_v not_o whole_o and_o plain_o against_o it_o that_o it_o be_v so_o yea_o our_o own_o canon_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o those_o which_o communicate_v not_o under_o both_o kind_n &_o therefore_o to_o communicate_v under_o one_o be_v not_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o communion_n bohem._n but_o of_o excommunication_n to_o this_o argument_n they_o yet_o find_v another_o shift_n more_o mischievous_a than_o the_o former_a that_o albeit_o that_o of_o one_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n another_o interpretation_n than_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n notwithstanding_o that_o that_o meaning_n which_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n must_v be_v accept_v as_o the_o way_n to_o salvation_n in_o asmuch_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v inspire_v it_o to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n &_o his_o maintainer_n according_a to_o their_o good_a pleasure_n may_v cry_v down_o all_o the_o ancient_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o coin_n be_v and_o put_v they_o into_o the_o mint_n to_o make_v they_o currant_n also_o that_o as_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v change_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o we_o must_v presume_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v change_v and_o therefore_o when_o that_o good_a man_n john_n hus_n can_v not_o content_v himself_o with_o these_o horrible_a blasphemy_n their_o last_o argument_n be_v the_o halter_n &_o the_o hang_v man_n to_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o fire_n to_o make_v god_n spirit_n changeable_a his_o word_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n god_n himself_o inconstant_a in_o his_o purpose_n &_o change_v himself_o according_a to_o the_o vanity_n &_o ambition_n of_o man_n will_v there_o be_v find_v in_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o pharisee_n in_o the_o speculation_n of_o the_o cabalist_n and_o thalmud_n in_o the_o alcoran_n of_o mahomet_n any_o such_o execrable_a blasphenne_n as_o these_o be_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o one_o whether_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n rule_v there_o in_o those_o council_n that_o there_o can_v be_v find_v no_o other_o judge_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o this_o time_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o how_o
every_o one_o may_v judge_v they_o by_o the_o same_o chap._n v._n now_o see_v then_o that_o they_o do_v doubt_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n let_v we_o bear_v at_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o refuse_v it_o and_o that_o they_o slander_v it_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v let_v we_o also_o see_v now_o whether_o they_o can_v allow_v of_o any_o other_o judge_n beside_o it_o i_o will_v demand_v of_o they_o if_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n they_o will_v choose_v any_o one_o which_o have_v be_v free_a from_o those_o refusal_n which_o they_o propound_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o whether_o they_o will_v allow_v all_o concern_v any_o one_o alone_o they_o can_v for_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o there_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v either_o one_o error_n or_o a_o other_o but_o they_o have_v so_o many_o error_n to_o defend_v that_o to_o defend_v all_o all_o the_o error_n of_o all_o time_n &_o age_n will_v not_o suffice_v moreover_o they_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o deny_v that_o their_o style_n be_v more_o obscure_a than_o the_o style_n of_o the_o scripture_n also_o they_o know_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n that_o in_o the_o most_o principal_a point_n they_o be_v on_o our_o side_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o which_o they_o will_v accept_v in_o &_o through_o all_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o condemn_v in_o irenee_n the_o error_n of_o the_o chiliast_n and_o the_o interpretation_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o apocalypse_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o cyprian_a anabaptisine_n in_o tertullian_n the_o heresy_n of_o montanus_n in_o s._n austin_n predestination_n and_o so_o like_o wise_a of_o other_o will_v they_o then_o receive_v all_o alike_o for_o judge_n but_o than_o who_o shall_v be_v precedent_n in_o the_o contrariety_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o interpretation_n for_o every_o one_o know_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v find_v some_o every_o where_o if_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o desire_v but_o if_o they_o refuse_v the_o scripture_n as_o party_n or_o partial_a by_o a_o more_o strong_a reason_n then_o we_o will_v not_o accept_v they_o for_o judge_n which_o be_v party_n against_o we_o in_o like_a manner_n shall_v it_o be_v with_o the_o schoolman_n if_o they_o take_v they_o for_o judge_n although_o that_o they_o be_v the_o principal_a author_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o between_o thomas_n and_o scotus_n and_o their_o army_n set_v in_o battle_n ray_n and_o fight_v one_o against_o a_o other_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o they_o choose_v either_o one_o of_o the_o council_n or_o else_o all_o the_o council_n together_o if_o they_o choose_v one_o we_o know_v that_o in_o every_o one_o light_o there_o be_v handle_v as_o yet_o but_o one_o thing_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o matter_n of_o arrius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o chalcedon_n the_o matter_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n and_o so_o likewise_o of_o other_o but_o of_o these_o point_n there_o be_v no_o contention_n between_o we_o if_o they_o will_v have_v all_o i_o demand_v who_o shall_v be_v precedent_n in_o the_o error_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n confess_v donatist_n and_o in_o the_o contrariety_n which_o they_o number_n who_o shall_v redress_v they_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n approve_v eutyches_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n condemn_v he_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a maintain_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n but_o that_o of_o frankford_n assemble_v about_o the_o same_o time_n by_o charles_n the_o great_a pull_v they_o down_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n permit_v the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n the_o council_n of_o neocesaria_n mentz_n and_o the_o second_o of_o carthage_n forbid_v it_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o basill_n do_v subject_v the_o pope_n under_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o make_v he_o equal_a with_o other_o bishop_n those_o of_o florence_n and_o of_o trent_n upon_o pain_n of_o the_o black_a curse_n have_v set_v he_o above_o all_o to_o be_v short_a the_o council_n of_o carthage_n excommunicate_v and_o curse_v he_o to_o the_o devil_n that_o call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n or_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trident_n excommunicate_v all_o those_o which_o hold_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o such_o a_o one_o i_o demand_v then_o in_o these_o contrariety_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o of_o like_a consequence_n who_o shall_v determine_v the_o matter_n shall_v it_o be_v the_o church_n now_o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o have_v say_v sometime_o one_o thing_n and_o sometime_o another_o for_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n be_v represent_v by_o general_a council_n and_o those_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v such_o as_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o these_o be_v then_o church_n contrary_v one_o a_o other_o or_o rather_o one_o contrary_a to_o itself_o moreover_o if_o it_o be_v the_o church_n yet_o we_o deny_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v say_v they_o to_o a_o particular_a church_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o universal_a which_o be_v represent_v by_o general_a council_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o they_o prove_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n above_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n none_o of_o the_o other_o church_n will_v believe_v they_o for_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v christ_n himself_o bear_v witness_n of_o himself_o but_o god_n who_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n know_v to_o have_v send_v he_o and_o see_v other_o church_n have_v their_o doctor_n council_n and_o tradition_n aswell_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v prove_v her_o proud_a prerogative_n &_o title_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o her_o prerogative_n the_o which_o pretend_v &_o bear_v man_n in_o hand_n to_o judge_v all_o other_o church_n than_o there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o more_o competent_a judge_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v nothing_o more_o than_o other_o and_o from_o who_o whatsoever_o she_o have_v she_o must_v will_v she_o will_v she_o fetch_v her_o pretend_a pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n now_o if_o they_o object_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n to_o judge_v of_o our_o controversy_n and_o that_o they_o have_v be_v oftentimes_o judge_v already_o by_o council_n etc_n saint_n augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o council_n may_v err_v and_o that_o the_o former_a council_n be_v amend_v by_o the_o latter_a and_o therefore_o he_o press_v not_o the_o arrian_n with_o council_n second_o if_o this_o point_n have_v any_o place_n what_o will_v they_o say_v then_o unto_o we_o why_o they_o have_v derogate_a from_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o be_v the_o first_o decomenicall_a council_n in_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n and_o in_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o there_o be_v make_v equal_a with_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o wherefore_o after_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o decide_v will_v they_o have_v it_o yet_o plead_v again_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n etc_n etc_n why_o will_v they_o have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v declare_v the_o vicar_n of_o god_n in_o earth_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n see_v that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v already_o pronounce_v he_o excommunicate_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o will_v call_v himself_o the_o chief_a bishop_n and_o head_n thereof_o moreover_o in_o the_o most_o approve_a council_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o point_n which_o we_o dispute_v of_o be_v not_o yet_o set_v out_o for_o error_n be_v not_o hatch_v but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o they_o begin_v to_o grow_v and_o increase_v after_o that_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n who_o in_o like_a manner_n also_o play_v the_o tyrant_n over_o the_o council_n moreover_o we_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o council_n and_o council_n for_o we_o willing_o accept_v the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o such_o like_a because_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n govern_v there_o the_o which_o word_n god_n always_o accompany_v with_o his_o spirit_n but_o we_o do_v not_o so_o receive_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a where_o idol_n be_v establish_v be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v allege_v as_o it_o be_v in_o mockery_n and_o which_o by_o consequent_a can_v not_o be_v accompany_v with_o any_o other_o than_o the_o spirit_n of_o
satan_n it_o be_v say_v say_v they_o god_n create_v man_n to_o his_o own_o image_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v image_n also_o no_o man_n light_v a_o candle_n for_o to_o hide_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o set_v image_n upon_o altar_n also_o god_n be_v name_v marvelous_a in_o his_o saint_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o behold_v his_o glory_n in_o image_n i_o ask_v of_o they_o what_o man_n he_o be_v that_o will_v rest_v himself_o upon_o a_o sentence_n give_v upon_o these_o proof_n for_o image_n now_o there_o be_v a_o infruite_n number_n of_o the_o like_a where_o a_o man_n may_v plain_o see_v the_o style_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n allege_v the_o scripture_n much_o worse_o than_o satan_n do_v to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v short_a if_o a_o man_n will_v not_o judge_v in_o a_o court_n by_o former_a sentence_n be_v there_o any_o reason_n to_o refuse_v the_o self_n same_o order_n in_o matter_n of_o conscience_n and_o against_o the_o sentence_n themselves_o that_o a_o man_n know_v to_o have_v be_v give_v the_o party_n be_v therein_o neither_o hear_v nor_o call_v but_o admit_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n to_o compass_v all_o doctrine_n they_o will_v yet_o ask_v i_o foran_n end_n in_o so_o great_a contrariety_n which_o be_v amongst_o we_o who_o he_o shall_v be_v that_o shall_v expound_v and_o apply_v they_o concern_v we_o we_o be_v party_n against_o they_o and_o as_o couch_v they_o they_o be_v party_n against_o we_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n here_o then_o for_o say_v they_o let_v the_o scripture_n be_v so_o great_a a_o judge_n as_o man_n will_v have_v it_o yet_o it_o speak_v not_o for_o to_o determine_v and_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o when_o a_o man_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o squeere_v in_o the_o measure_n or_o of_o the_o compass_n in_o the_o ship_n there_o be_v no_o mason_n so_o slender_a witted_a which_o do_v not_o know_v in_o apply_v it_o which_o be_v straight_o and_o which_o be_v crooked_a nor_o mariner_n so_o unskilful_a that_o do_v not_o perceive_v whether_o the_o ship_n keep_v her_o right_a course_n or_o noah_n and_o therefore_o let_v they_o only_o grant_v we_o to_o guide_v the_o precept_n of_o our_o salvation_n accord_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o salvation_n contain_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o we_o will_v therein_o submit_v ourselves_o not_o only_o to_o a_o free_a and_o lawful_a council_n but_o also_o to_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a to_o the_o minister_n and_o common_a people_n and_o to_o all_o christian_n for_o who_o salvation_n it_o be_v write_v who_o by_o themselves_o shall_v find_v in_o this_o word_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o word_n and_o shall_v pronounce_v definitive_a sentence_n for_o the_o same_o furthermore_o in_o every_o art_n there_o be_v certain_a principle_n and_o ground_n whereupon_o undoubted_o depend_v all_o the_o rest_n geometry_n have_v her_o axiom_n physic_n her_o aphorism_n and_o the_o evil_a and_o canon_n law_n their_o general_a rule_n by_o which_o they_o will_v scan_v all_o difficulty_n which_o shall_v arise_v in_o their_o law_n now_o say_v i_o that_o divinity_n also_o have_v her_o rule_n &_o ground_n and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v her_o certain_a principle_n able_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n which_o be_v amongst_o we_o yea_o and_o those_o so_o much_o the_o more_o strong_a and_o easy_a as_o we_o be_v most_o assure_v that_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o doubt_n contradiction_n or_o contrariety_n in_o they_o to_o make_v they_o void_a or_o unstable_a now_o we_o have_v three_o sort_n of_o difference_n or_o controversy_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o one_o sort_n consist_v in_o thing_n plain_o forbid_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o other_o in_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o command_v and_o the_o last_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o certain_a point_n which_o be_v either_o forbid_v or_o command_v which_o both_o of_o we_o receive_v but_o diverse_o concern_v the_o first_o kind_n 4.19_o we_o have_v a_o rule_n in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n then_o man._n this_o be_v so_o easy_a that_o even_o little_a child_n may_v comprehend_v it_o when_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o man_n command_v one_o thing_n and_o god_n another_o we_o can_v doubt_v which_o we_o ought_v to_o obey_v by_o this_o rule_n we_o cut_v of_o image_n relic_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o papacy_n which_o be_v express_o forbid_v in_o a_o hundred_o place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n concern_v the_o second_o we_o have_v a_o other_o rule_n god_n be_v the_o only_a lawgiver_n unto_o his_o people_n 16.12_o thou_o shall_v not_o say_v he_o neither_o add_v nor_o diminish_v from_o my_o law_n christ_n say_v god_n will_v not_o be_v serve_v according_a to_o our_o tradition_n but_o according_a to_o his_o commandment_n s._n john_n and_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o salvation_n chrysostom_n say_v where_o the_o scripture_n hold_v it_o peace_n spirit_n there_o man_n must_v hold_v his_o peace_n s._n hierome_n prattle_v without_o proof_n of_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n this_o be_v a_o rule_n common_o give_v to_o all_o people_n and_o whereof_o also_o the_o people_n be_v capable_a let_v the_o people_n now_o read_v the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n and_o let_v they_o mark_v if_o they_o find_v any_o one_o word_n direct_o or_o indirect_o secret_o or_o plain_o which_o speak_v nigh_o or_o far_o of_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saintes_n and_o such_o other_o point_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o contrary_a wise_a if_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v therein_o from_o line_n to_o line_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n once_o offer_v up_o for_o all_o that_o there_o be_v one_o only_o wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n to_o be_v call_v upon_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o find_v there_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o condemn_v then_o let_v they_o condemn_v we_o and_o cry_v faggot_n and_o fire_n against_o we_o if_o not_o then_o let_v they_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o rule_n which_o be_v afore_o touch_v which_o they_o have_v abuse_v and_o have_v cause_v man_n to_o search_v their_o salvation_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o doctor_n of_o their_o salvation_n have_v not_o teach_v they_o &_o consequent_o wherein_o they_o can_v find_v nothing_o but_o destruction_n yea_o i_o say_v more_o that_o if_o the_o learned_a will_v take_v pain_n to_o read_v after_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o shall_v not_o find_v there_o any_o one_o word_n thereof_o or_o if_o they_o do_v find_v any_o such_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o more_o doubt_v they_o if_o they_o have_v speak_v nothing_o whereof_o then_o they_o will_v of_o themselves_o conclude_v forasmuch_o as_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n have_v teach_v nothing_o thereof_o nor_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v believe_v nothing_o nor_o they_o that_o come_v long_o after_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v doubtful_a that_o these_o be_v such_o thing_n whereof_o we_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o doubt_v with_o the_o doctor_n but_o also_o whereof_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o keep_v silence_n with_o jesus_n christ_n as_o for_o example_n 400._o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v to_o call_v upon_o saintes_n there_o be_v not_o find_v one_o word_n in_o the_o ancient_a writer_n vulesse_a it_o be_v for_o the_o condemnation_n of_o those_o which_o do_v it_o according_a to_o the_o imitation_n of_o the_o painims_n in_o serve_v their_o god_n passim_fw-la of_o purgatory_n the_o first_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n s._n augustine_n who_o be_v long_o after_o sometime_o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o sometime_o that_o there_o may_v well_o be_v one_o sometime_o that_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n whether_o there_o be_v one_o or_o whether_o there_o be_v none_o and_o s._n gregory_n who_o be_v after_o he_o he_o begin_v to_o believe_v by_o certain_a vision_n that_o there_o be_v one_o and_o this_o be_v 500_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v altogether_o like_a for_o we_o may_v mark_v the_o beginning_n proceed_n and_o increase_n piece_n by_o piece_n even_o until_o our_o time_n and_o yet_o forsooth_o these_o be_v make_v article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o for_o these_o man_n burn_v the_o christian_n for_o which_o even_o by_o as_o good_a reason_n they_o
may_v have_v burn_v all_o the_o primitive_a church_n by_o this_o one_o only_a rule_n therefore_o comprise_v in_o a_o few_o word_n and_o easy_a for_o every_o one_o to_o understand_v we_o cut_v of_o the_o mass_n purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o pope_n his_o pardon_n indulgence_n and_o almost_o all_o that_o have_v trouble_v christendom_n for_o this_o long_a time_n but_o to_o defeat_v this_o rule_n they_o will_v draw_v certain_a place_n by_o the_o hair_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v we_o to_o find_v therein_o their_o lewd_a invention_n as_o for_o example_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v in_o this_o world_n 12.10_o nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v ergo_fw-la there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v as_o s._n mark_n have_v expound_v it_o by_o these_o word_n it_o shall_v never_o be_v pardon_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n also_o if_o moses_n and_o samuel_n be_v before_o i_o to_o pray_v for_o this_o people_n i_o will_v not_o forgive_v they_o ergo_fw-la say_v they_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o saint_n whereas_o quite_o contrary_a by_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o the_o text_n a_o man_n shall_v rather_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o call_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v clear_a that_o as_o god_n say_v if_o moses_n and_o samuel_n be_v alive_a and_o shall_v entreat_v as_o sometime_o they_o do_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o that_o people_n they_o be_v become_v so_o heinous_a that_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o forgive_v they_o to_o be_v short_a even_o altogether_o like_a as_o it_o be_v that_o jeremy_n in_o the_o chapter_n aforego_v when_o he_o have_v make_v earnest_a prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o the_o people_n he_o answer_v he_o that_o if_o moses_n himself_o who_o be_v most_o dear_a unto_o he_o shall_v pray_v unto_o he_o for_o this_o people_n he_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o again_o sometime_o they_o have_v certain_a allegory_n to_o prove_v these_o matter_n by_o but_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o whether_o these_o doctrine_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n yea_o or_o no_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a than_o we_o have_v another_o certain_a rule_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v clear_a to_o salvation_n for_o that_o same_o light_n itself_o be_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o to_o teach_v we_o &_o that_o have_v it_o not_o do_v dark_o or_o about_o the_o bush_n the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v down_o upon_o christ_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o upon_o the_o apostle_n in_o great_a brightness_n their_o doctrine_n therefore_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a and_o they_o be_v not_o doctor_n or_o teacher_n of_o darkness_n let_v they_o therefore_o allege_v one_o plain_a and_o manifest_a place_n &_o not_o bring_v place_n wrest_v from_o their_o proper_a meaning_n and_o altogether_o from_o the_o purpose_n and_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v unto_o they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n which_o s._n hierome_n give_v that_o allegory_n &_o dark_a place_n prove_v nothing_o 24.9_o and_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o and_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o that_o which_o be_v dark_a in_o one_o place_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a in_o another_o 4._o now_o as_o concern_v the_o three_o point_n we_o have_v a_o rule_n which_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v give_v we_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o light_n to_o itself_o and_o that_o which_o be_v dark_a in_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o itself_o in_o another_o place_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o determination_n of_o all_o matter_n must_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o conference_n of_o such_o place_n where_o they_o be_v handle_v beside_o we_o have_v two_o mark_n to_o direct_v ourselves_o by_o to_o which_o the_o whole_a scripture_n tend_v and_o they_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n moreover_o we_o bold_o admittte_v all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o matter_n belong_v to_o this_o third_o kind_n namely_o in_o the_o place_n and_o treatise_n where_o they_o express_o handle_v they_o and_o wheresoever_o they_o be_v or_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a we_o willing_o refer_v therein_o ourselves_o to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o own_o common_a sense_n and_o meaning_n that_o shall_v have_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o for_o example_n there_o be_v a_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o whether_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n or_o no._n first_o of_o all_o i_o confer_v or_o way_n together_o the_o place_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o i_o find_v in_o saint_n luke_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n 12._o which_o can_v be_v expound_v without_o a_o figure_n and_o i_o know_v that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v both_o of_o like_a importance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n further_o i_o consider_v that_o the_o question_n be_v here_o of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o accustomable_a manner_n of_o speak_v common_a to_o all_o sacrament_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n this_o be_v one_o place_n baptism_n be_v regeneration_n that_o be_v another_o etc_n etc_n final_o i_o find_v in_o s._n augustine_n these_o word_n in_o figurative_a speech_n 15._o say_v he_o always_o keep_v this_o rule_n if_o it_o be_v a_o manner_n of_o speech_n that_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n command_v thou_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a or_o forbid_v thou_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a straight_a way_n thou_o may_v judge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o figure_n for_o thou_o have_v find_v there_o the_o scope_n and_o butt_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o charity_n but_o if_o thou_o shall_v take_v it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o command_v thou_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a or_o to_o forbid_v that_o which_o be_v good_a than_o thou_o shall_v straight_o way_n judge_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n there_o be_v a_o figure_n for_o example_n say_v he_o except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n it_o seem_v that_o christ_n command_v we_o a_o foul_a &_o a_o heinous_a thing_n this_o therefore_o say_v he_o be_v a_o figurative_a manner_n of_o speech_n by_o which_o he_o command_v we_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o passion_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o thorough_o to_o fix_v in_o our_o memory_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v pierce_v and_o crucify_v for_o we_o when_o i_o see_v then_o that_o it_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n figure_v that_o s._n augustine_n himself_o allege_v it_o unto_o we_o for_o example_n of_o figurative_a speech_n i_o resolve_v myself_o that_o this_o with_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n confer_v in_o like_a sort_n together_o prove_v such_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o supper_n can_v be_v otherwise_o take_v but_o figurative_o now_o by_o these_o rule_v then_o shall_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o supper_n justification_n of_o faith_n and_o work_v free_a will_n and_o such_o other_o be_v determine_v which_o stand_v upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o will_v draw_v to_o their_o own_o meaning_n and_o intention_n i_o demand_v then_o of_o every_o christian_a man_n what_o we_o may_v just_o attribute_v more_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o where_o we_o have_v a_o plain_a forbid_v from_o god_n every_o one_o will_v agree_v unto_o we_o that_o man_n can_v do_v nothing_o and_o that_o there_o need_v no_o interpreter_n again_o where_o we_o have_v no_o commandment_n from_o his_o mouth_n there_o it_o less_o behove_v for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o text_n there_o can_v be_v no_o gloze_n those_o matter_n than_o remain_v out_o of_o which_o these_o commandment_n be_v take_v and_o interpret_v diverse_o in_o which_o we_o most_o glad_o admit_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o most_o notable_a in_o all_o age_n to_o conclude_v then_o this_o article_n we_o say_v that_o the_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n be_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n thereof_o due_o administer_v and_o the_o undoubted_a touchstone_n of_o pure_a doctrine_n be_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o god_n have_v deliver_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o his_o church_n that_o the_o same_o be_v perfect_a and_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o that_o desire_v their_o salvation_n yea_o aswell_o of_o itself_o as_o confer_v with_o itself_o albeit_o for_o the_o decide_n of_o controversy_n found_v upon_o the_o same_o we_o willing_o admit_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a brief_o
because_o we_o find_v not_o this_o purity_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a neither_o the_o law_n of_o god_n obey_v by_o make_v subject_n to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o upholder_n we_o hold_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o impure_a and_o we_o mark_v the_o pope_n that_o govern_v there_o for_o a_o notable_a mark_n of_o antichrist_n lift_v up_o himself_o above_o god_o for_o that_o he_o set_v the_o law_n of_o god_n behind_o his_o own_o commandment_n and_o vain_a invention_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v err_v yea_o and_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o those_o which_o concern_v our_o salvation_n chap._n vi_o because_o our_o adversary_n know_v very_o well_o that_o they_o can_v not_o defend_v neither_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o false_a doctrine_n which_o bear_v sway_n amongst_o they_o in_o the_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v examine_v they_o by_o piecemeal_o therefore_o they_o have_v think_v good_a to_o defend_v all_o at_o once_o to_o wit_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v especial_o in_o matter_n that_o do_v concern_v salvation_n for_o say_v they_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o guide_v the_o same_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o this_o spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o understanding_n which_o inspire_v into_o she_o in_o time_n and_o place_n all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o to_o lead_v she_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o she_o can_v not_o err_v but_o as_o they_o defend_v this_o bulwark_n assure_v themselves_o to_o defend_v all_o their_o babylon_n so_o be_v it_o also_o as_o certain_a that_o this_o be_v once_o win_v they_o can_v not_o any_o long_o stand_v when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o matter_n 2._o they_o understand_v proper_o the_o clergy_n represent_v by_o a_o general_a council_n and_o not_o the_o common_a people_n of_o who_o they_o make_v no_o state_n the_o which_o thing_n many_o of_o themselves_o condemn_v as_o repugnant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n notwithstanding_o i_o be_o content_a in_o this_o matter_n to_o speak_v after_o their_o manner_n to_o the_o end_n to_o avoid_v all_o cavil_n and_o start_a hole_n together_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o one_o body_n not_o of_o that_o there_o nor_o of_o this_o here_o neither_o of_o one_o nor_o of_o other_o but_o of_o all_o church_n alike_o now_o this_o head_n be_v unto_o the_o church_n as_o reason_n unto_o a_o man_n to_o wit_n to_o rule_v &_o to_o guide_v the_o same_o by_o his_o commandment_n now_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o desire_n do_v obey_v reason_n &_o the_o body_n the_o head_n man_n be_v in_o good_a case_n his_o sense_n his_o move_n &_o action_n be_v in_o their_o perfection_n &_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o he_o which_o savour_v not_o the_o good_a government_n of_o reason_n contrariwise_o when_o the_o desire_n will_v cast_v of_o obedience_n to_o reason_n and_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o government_n but_o give_v itself_o to_o drunkenness_n riot_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o excess_n then_o enter_v he_o into_o a_o distemperature_n of_o all_o his_o body_n the_o vital_a part_n be_v therewith_o offend_v he_o lose_v one_o member_n &_o one_o sense_n after_o a_o other_o sight_n hear_v and_o all_o the_o power_n depart_v away_o from_o he_o to_o be_v short_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n reason_n itself_o oftentimes_o be_v take_v from_o he_o because_o he_o make_v no_o account_n to_o obey_v it_o i_o say_v that_o the_o self_n same_o may_v fall_v out_o and_o many_o time_n do_v fall_v out_o in_o the_o church_n now_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o church_n do_v obey_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n her_o head_n he_o arken_v unto_o his_o commandment_n which_o be_v reason_n itself_o &_o follow_v his_o government_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o scripture_n she_o can_v not_o err_v in_o the_o path_n of_o salvation_n she_o be_v sound_a pure_a and_o perfect_a and_o also_o he_o take_v pleasure_n to_o lead_v she_o and_o inspire_v into_o she_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n to_o enlighten_v she_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o darkness_n itself_o but_o when_o she_o tread_v his_o government_n under_o her_o foot_n and_o make_v no_o account_n to_o hearken_v unto_o he_o but_o presume_v to_o be_v wise_a enough_o of_o herself_o to_o govern_v herself_o then_o be_v it_o no_o marvel_v if_o she_o fall_v as_o it_o be_v in_o piece_n and_o lose_v one_o sense_n after_o a_o other_o if_o her_o eye_n lead_v she_o into_o the_o pit_n and_o if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n abandon_v himself_o and_o forsake_v she_o because_o she_o make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o word_n with_o which_o he_o be_v inseparable_o join_v &_o knit_v together_o for_o as_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v his_o flock_n to_o err_v so_o be_v it_o also_o as_o certain_a on_o the_o other_o part_n that_o he_o do_v not_o account_v any_o for_o his_o sheep_n but_o choose_v which_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o those_o hear_v his_o voice_n which_o harken_v unto_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o make_v they_o clear_o to_o understand_v his_o will._n god_n have_v first_o send_v his_o prophet_n have_v now_o in_o the_o end_n send_v from_o heaven_n his_o own_o word_n which_o have_v say_v to_o we_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v that_o same_o word_n also_o which_o have_v send_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o apostle_n if_o we_o then_o will_v feel_v the_o spirit_n it_o behove_v that_o we_o hear_v the_o word_n for_o the_o spirit_n be_v send_v from_o the_o word_n but_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n do_v make_v no_o account_n of_o this_o word_n in_o stead_n of_o harken_v unto_o it_o it_o will_v be_v hear_v afore_o it_o in_o stead_n of_o obey_v unto_o it_o it_o will_v make_v commandment_n of_o itself_o in_o respect_n of_o which_o those_o of_o god_n have_v be_v neglect_v yea_o it_o have_v abolish_v &_o cut_v of_o certain_a commandment_n whole_o and_o that_o open_o it_o follow_v then_o that_o it_o can_v not_o boast_v neither_o of_o the_o spirit_n neither_o of_o the_o lead_n thereof_o forasmuch_o as_o this_o spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o send_n of_o the_o essential_a word_n who_o have_v leave_v we_o his_o word_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o we_o see_v the_o a_o king_n will_v communicate_v his_o authority_n to_o a_o parliament_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v they_o obey_v his_o law_n &_o to_o distribute_v they_o to_o his_o people_n but_o if_o the_o parliament_z shall_v abuse_v they_o to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v itself_o obey_v above_o the_o king_n and_o the_o law_n themselves_o he_o will_v straightways_o take_v his_o authority_n from_o it_o now_o god_n and_o his_o law_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n be_v far_o great_a than_o these_o for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o proportion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a to_o that_o which_o be_v finite_a and_o therefore_o be_v it_o any_o wonder_n if_o he_o have_v take_v from_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n when_o they_o will_v give_v authority_n to_o their_o vain_a tradition_n above_o the_o law_n itself_o and_o that_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o spirit_n we_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o word_n be_v inseparable_o join_v and_o knit_v together_o and_o that_o without_o great_a sacrilege_n they_o can_v be_v separate_v forasmuch_o as_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o word_n itself_o have_v so_o teach_v we_o when_o that_o same_o comforter_n shall_v come_v 14.26_o that_o same_o spirit_n i_o mean_v of_o truth_n he_o shall_v lead_v you_o say_v he_o into_o all_o truth_n for_o he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o shall_v hear_v that_o shall_v he_o speak_v he_o shall_v glorify_v i_o for_o he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o and_o shall_v show_v it_o unto_o you_o and_o shall_v bring_v all_o thing_n to_o your_o remembrance_n which_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o etc_n etc_n if_o this_o spirit_n hear_v the_o word_n and_o speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o by_o a_o more_o strong_a reason_n the_o church_n shall_v if_o she_o be_v govern_v and_o lead_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n he_o say_v also_o unto_o his_o apostle_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 28.20_o this_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o spirit_n but_o he_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o self_n same_o verse_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v that_o be_v to_o say_v my_o word_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n preach_v the_o word_n both_o by_o lively_a voice_n
and_o also_o by_o writing_n do_v nevertheless_o call_v his_o ministry_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n 3.8_o that_o give_v efficacy_n and_o power_n to_o this_o word_n the_o scripture_n be_v call_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n and_o in_o all_o covenant_n there_o be_v condition_n of_o both_o party_n concern_v the_o old_a we_o see_v that_o the_o saw_n be_v keep_v in_o the_o ark_n upon_o which_o god_n manifest_v his_o presence_n unto_o his_o people_n when_o he_o give_v they_o counsel_n and_o in_o all_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o people_n forsake_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o serve_v baal_n we_o see_v that_o god_n likewise_o answer_v not_o unto_o their_o demand_n not_o vouchsafe_v to_o assist_v those_o by_o his_o spirit_n which_o make_v no_o account_n of_o his_o word_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o new_a behold_v my_o covenant_n that_o i_o make_v with_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n 59.21_o my_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n for_o ever_o etc_n etc_n he_o join_v the_o spirit_n with_o the_o word_n in_o plain_a word_n as_o if_o the_o covenant_n be_v conceive_v in_o these_o word_n my_o spirit_n shall_v be_v in_o thou_o but_o mark_v this_o that_o the_o word_n that_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n do_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n for_o ever_o neither_o ought_v we_o to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o much_o to_o abase_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o bring_v it_o back_o to_o the_o word_n for_o this_o be_v always_o to_o measure_n god_n by_o himself_o and_o this_o also_o be_v the_o only_a measure_n that_o he_o have_v give_v us._n 4._o for_o if_o spirit_n be_v to_o be_v discern_v by_o doctrine_n as_o saint_n john_n teach_v we_o and_o doctrine_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n must_v be_v consider_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o be_v leave_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o gather_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o there_o we_o may_v have_v a_o lively_a portraiture_n and_o draft_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o have_v teach_v the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o word_n to_o discern_v the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n who_o without_o any_o allowance_n of_o this_o word_n dare_v teach_v false_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n the_o church_n than_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o his_o will_n but_o in_o asmuch_o as_o she_o search_v for_o it_o in_o his_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o he_o that_o search_v the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o word_n the_o spirit_n be_v therein_o give_v unto_o he_o for_o a_o interpreter_n but_o to_o those_o that_o make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o text_n there_o need_v no_o interpreter_n and_o therefore_o to_o those_o that_o neglect_v the_o word_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o invention_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o give_v for_o a_o interpreter_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o mingle_v together_o unless_o that_o a_o man_n forsake_v his_o own_o spirit_n and_o his_o own_o fancy_n to_o be_v lead_v and_o conduct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o all_o those_o therefore_o that_o allege_v the_o lead_v of_o the_o spirit_n without_o the_o word_n we_o will_v answer_v with_o saint_n john_n chrysostome_n that_o which_o follow_v spi_n many_o say_v he_o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n but_o they_o which_o bring_v their_o own_o pretend_v the_o spirit_n false_o as_o christ_n witness_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o himself_o in_o asmuch_o as_o his_o doctrine_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n in_o such_o sort_n if_o any_o man_n bring_v unto_o we_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o spirit_n any_o doctrine_n not_o contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n we_o believe_v it_o not_o for_o as_o christ_n have_v fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n so_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v fulfil_v the_o gospel_n now_o chrysostome_n have_v in_o hand_n in_o this_o sermon_n to_o extol_v the_o spirit_n for_o there_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ought_v to_o be_v worship_v as_o the_o true_a god_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o chrysostome_n think_v it_o not_o abase_v to_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o measure_v it_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n no_o more_o than_o do_v our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o measure_v it_o according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n they_o object_n unto_o we_o that_o god_o be_v sure_a in_o his_o promise_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o keep_v the_o covenant_n that_o he_o have_v make_v with_o his_o church_n we_o answer_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o word_n of_o god_o endure_v for_o ever_o but_o in_o all_o these_o say_a covenant_n there_o be_v always_o a_o condition_n if_o you_o keep_v my_o word_n how_o soever_o through_o his_o mercy_n he_o many_o time_n bear_v long_o with_o our_o iniquity_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o conclude_v god_n be_v sure_a therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v but_o much_o rather_o to_o say_v see_v that_o the_o church_n err_v so_o great_o and_o so_o oftentimes_o forsake_v hun_z it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o god_n be_v sure_a in_o his_o promise_n and_o full_a of_o mercy_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o very_o often_o he_o keep_v his_o covenant_n with_o she_o how_o corrupt_a and_o disease_a soever_o she_o be_v and_o even_o then_o when_o she_o provoke_v he_o to_o a_o divorce_n so_o as_o she_o tread_v the_o contract_v of_o marriage_n under_o her_o foot_n and_o when_o she_o have_v enlarge_v her_o bed_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v to_o all_o comer_n as_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v show_v in_o all_o time_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n when_o our_o adversary_n will_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o scripture_n 3._o they_o begin_v it_o at_o adam_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o we_o must_v begin_v god_n have_v create_v adam_n he_o forbid_v he_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o command_v he_o to_o order_v all_o his_o affection_n and_o desire_n according_a to_o his_o holy_a will_n and_o to_o seek_v all_o his_o felicity_n and_o all_o his_o knowledge_n in_o this_o only_a point_n of_o cleave_v unto_o god_n if_o he_o do_v not_o he_o signify_v unto_o he_o by_o this_o that_o he_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o god_n which_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o our_o soul_n be_v in_o our_o body_n in_o this_o covenant_n we_o see_v a_o plain_a condition_n adam_n altogether_o full_a of_o grace_n as_o he_o be_v then_o love_v rather_o to_o follow_v his_o fantasy_n then_o to_o be_v order_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o hearken_v rather_o to_o the_o voice_n of_o satan_n then_o of_o his_o creator_n just_a punishment_n follow_v upon_o he_o and_o upon_o all_o his_o posterity_n man_n remain_v corrupt_v not_o only_o in_o his_o body_n and_o outward_a sense_n but_o also_o in_o his_o reason_n and_o in_o his_o understanding_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o reason_n itself_o for_o the_o most_o part_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o make_v they_o so_o much_o the_o more_o unreasonable_a and_o understand_v nothing_o but_o to_o make_v they_o search_v curiosity_n that_o may_v withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o salvation_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o may_v mark_v in_o our_o foolish_a unconstancy_n the_o constant_a love_n and_o goodness_n of_o our_o creator_n towards_o we_o his_o unworthy_a treasure_n when_o he_o promise_v even_o present_o after_o to_o our_o first_o parent_n the_o seed_n that_o shall_v brufe_v the_o head_n of_o the_o serpent_n in_o which_o alone_o they_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n this_o than_o be_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n break_v of_o man_n part_n by_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o repair_v again_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o second_o by_o the_o assure_a goodness_n and_o only_a bounty_n of_o the_o creator_n now_o if_o this_o church_n even_o from_o her_o first_o root_n be_v thus_o pollute_v if_o from_o her_o beginning_n even_o then_o when_o she_o be_v full_a of_o knowledge_n and_o incegritie_n and_o when_o she_o enjoy_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n she_o fail_v so_o shameful_o because_o she_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o her_o god_n to_o her_o own_o desire_n can_v it_o be_v that_o any_o man_n now_o a_o day_n in_o obscurity_n
he_o which_o make_v it_o to_o be_v set_v up_o under_o manasses_n 23._o idolatry_n be_v so_o monstrous_a so_o public_a and_o so_o smitter_n shall_fw-mi that_o there_o appear_v not_o any_o face_n of_o the_o people_n or_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o be_v by_o and_o by_o add_v as_o before_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n hide_v and_o bury_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o none_o can_v know_v any_o more_o what_o it_o be_v and_o if_o man_n mark_v what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n he_o shall_v see_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o public_a &_o continual_a idolatry_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o schism_n until_o their_o utter_a overthrow_n these_o impiety_n then_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o that_o time_n be_v not_o as_o a_o folly_n or_o sickness_n which_o pass_v light_o away_o but_o rather_o which_o be_v here_o clear_o see_v under_o the_o reign_n of_o three_o or_o four_o king_n the_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n be_v tanquam_fw-la lucida_fw-la quaedam_fw-la in_o furiosis_fw-la interualla_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v as_o certain_a good_a mode_n and_o season_n of_o right_a reason_n in_o a_o common_a rage_n &_o folly_n this_o be_v that_o time_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n cry_v out_o you_o you_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o israel_n 2.3.13.14_o and_o you_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o you_o serve_v he_o not_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o righteousness_n you_o have_v say_v unto_o a_o piece_n of_o wood_n thou_o be_v my_o father_n &_o to_o a_o stone_n thou_o have_v beget_v i_o you_o you_o have_v prostitute_v yourselves_o under_o every_o green_a tree_n you_o have_v abandon_v i_o by_o the_o space_n of_o innumerable_a day_n and_o you_o have_v god_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o your_o city_n etc_n etc_n to_o be_v short_a all_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v send_v even_o until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o all_o the_o prophet_n all_o the_o chapter_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n nothing_o else_o but_o testimony_n of_o the_o idolatry_n and_o adultery_n of_o the_o church_n with_o strange_a god_n who_o for_o the_o same_o threaten_v she_o and_o signify_v unto_o she_o a_o divorce_n if_o she_o do_v not_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n in_o mean_a while_n he_o that_o shall_v mark_v what_o manner_n of_o band_n &_o company_n that_o be_v in_o this_o time_n which_o our_o adversary_n call_v the_o church_n understanding_n the_o clergy_n the_o priest_n the_o scribe_n &_o the_o ordinary_a prophet_n a_o man_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o true_a prophet_n which_o be_v send_v from_o god_n have_v no_o great_a enemy_n than_o they_o be_v that_o they_o be_v these_o that_o imprison_v they_o &_o put_v they_o to_o death_n as_o troubler_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o a_o prophet_n must_v be_v murder_v out_o of_o jerusalem_fw-la and_o when_o they_o say_v unto_o they_o turn_v you_o unto_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n reform_v the_o church_n forsake_v your_o idolatry_n etc_n burden_n not_o the_o people_n with_o so_o many_o of_o your_o vain_a tradition_n etc_n etc_n they_o have_v the_o self_n same_o answer_n that_o our_o adversary_n have_v 18.18_o we_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v the_o church_n we_o be_v the_o watchman_n of_o the_o people_n the_o law_n shall_v not_o perish_v from_o the_o priest_n nor_o the_o counsel_n from_o the_o wise_a nor_o the_o word_n from_o that_o prophet_n our_o church_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v can_v fail_v come_v then_o &_o let_v we_o strike_v they_o with_o our_o tongue_n and_o let_v we_o not_o harken_v to_o their_o word_n but_o the_o prophet_n show_v they_o very_o well_o how_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v say_v you_o not_o here_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 7._o for_o i_o have_v abandon_v silo_n which_o i_o have_v choose_v and_o i_o will_v reject_v you_o also_o if_o you_o continue_v etc_n etc_n say_v you_o not_o that_o the_o la_o shall_v not_o perish_v from_o the_o priest_n etc_n etc_n for_o 15.3_o for_o a_o long_a season_n israel_n and_o juda_n be_v without_o the_o true_a god_n without_o a_o priest_n without_o a_o teacher_n etc_n etc_n seek_v therefore_o the_o lord_n 22._o etc_n etc_n your_o priest_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v break_v my_o law_n and_o they_o have_v defile_v my_o holy_a place_n they_o have_v not_o say_v where_o be_v the_o lord_n 2.8_o they_o understand_v not_o my_o word_n &_o they_o have_v not_o know_v i_o 7._o your_o prophet_n have_v prophesy_v lie_v say_v the_o lord_n have_v say_v thus_o whereas_o the_o lord_n never_o speak_v it_o 9.8_o they_o have_v prophesy_v in_o baal_n &_o have_v go_v after_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v vain_a 16.10_o your_o watchman_n be_v blind_a &_o your_o prophet_n be_v snare_n of_o the_o foul_a thou_o will_v demand_v a_o vision_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o la_o shall_v perish_v from_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o counsel_n from_o the_o ancient_a &_o the_o night_n shall_v be_v unto_o you_o for_o a_o vision_n etc_n etc_n the_o sun_n shall_v go_v down_o over_o the_o prophet_n &_o the_o day_n shall_v be_v dark_a over_o they_o 3.6_o they_o shall_v all_o cover_v their_o lip_n because_o they_o shall_v receive_v no_o answer_n from_o god_n seek_v therefore_o the_o lord_n &_o you_o shall_v find_v he_o etc_n etc_n behold_v how_o the_o true_a prophet_n who_o in_o comparison_n of_o these_o prelate_n be_v account_v the_o of_o scour_v and_o muck_n of_o the_o world_n beat_v back_o all_o their_o vain_a presumption_n that_o they_o have_v of_o not_o be_v deceive_v to_o be_v short_a the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n be_v throw_v down_o far_o beneath_o that_o of_o samaria_n and_o of_o sodom_n 18._o her_o prelate_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o gomorrha_n her_o council_n and_o assembly_n conspiracy_n and_o conjuration_n against_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n her_o sacrifice_n whorish_a and_o adulterate_a and_o of_o all_o those_o that_o the_o lord_n send_v to_o exhort_v they_o to_o reformation_n there_o can_v hardly_o be_v find_v any_o one_o that_o a_o little_a while_n escape_v the_o cruelty_n of_o this_o assembly_n which_o draw_v all_o the_o title_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n to_o itself_o in_o the_o midst_n notwithstanding_o of_o this_o horrible_a confusion_n god_n know_v his_o church_n for_o if_o the_o lord_n say_v esai_n the_o prophet_n have_v not_o restore_v even_o a_o small_a remnant_n 1._o they_o have_v be_v as_o sodom_n and_o shall_v have_v be_v like_o unto_o gomorrha_n and_o he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n 8._o behold_v i_o lord_n &_o my_o child_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o disciple_n that_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o final_o when_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o wholesome_a exhortation_n of_o the_o prophet_n god_n will_v even_o constrain_v they_o by_o his_o mercy_n and_o therefore_o send_v they_o even_o salvation_n itself_o from_o heaven_n to_o wit_n jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n but_o the_o church_n behave_v itself_o towards_o he_o even_o likewise_o he_o have_v no_o great_a enemy_n than_o the_o priest_n the_o scribe_n the_o doctor_n the_o pharisee_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o our_o adversary_n speak_v the_o clergy_n and_o those_o which_o have_v the_o law_n commit_v unto_o they_o and_o those_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n if_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n than_o say_v they_o he_o will_v destroy_v the_o temple_n if_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o messiah_n than_o he_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o law_n if_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n than_o he_o strike_v at_o the_o majesty_n of_o cesar_n if_o he_o wrought_v any_o miracle_n that_o be_v by_o the_o devil_n if_o he_o allege_v the_o scripture_n than_o they_o demand_v of_o he_o where_o be_v the_o letter_n of_o his_o doctourship_n reproach_v he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o carpenter_n son_n to_o be_v short_a all_o their_o argument_n against_o christ_n be_v even_o the_o same_o that_o our_o master_n use_v against_o we_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n we_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o belong_v to_o we_o to_o expound_v they_o and_o not_o to_o you_o who_o have_v not_o receive_v holy_a order_n as_o we_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o these_o be_v they_o that_o with_o their_o gloss_n tradition_n and_o unwritten_a verity_n with_o their_o succession_n interpretation_n and_o council_n most_o cruel_o persecute_v he_o even_o to_o the_o snatch_v he_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o heathen_a magistrate_n who_o judge_v he_o innocent_a that_o
the_o service_n of_o god_n there_o be_v this_o other_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a country_n and_o in_o that_o country_n one_o only_a city_n jerusalem_n and_o in_o that_o city_n but_o one_o temple_n where_o man_n ought_v to_o sacrifice_v so_o that_o there_o one_o governor_n and_o one_o high_a priest_n may_v suffice_v in_o stead_n whereof_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v become_v one_o temple_n and_o all_o the_o people_n but_o one_o flock_n which_o must_v be_v feed_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n a_o thing_n that_o no_o one_o man_n may_v presume_v to_o do_v not_o that_o i_o will_v deny_v but_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o one_o pope_n there_o may_v be_v ambition_n enough_o to_o covet_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o this_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o all_o history_n but_o rather_o i_o will_v say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o have_v forfeit_v &_o lose_v the_o crown_n if_o he_o fail_v to_o instruct_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o lest_o diocese_n in_o the_o world_n of_o this_o allegation_n then_o they_o conclude_v nothing_o to_o their_o advantage_n unless_o they_o will_v become_v jew_n &_o enclose_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o one_o city_n &_o make_v void_a the_o benefit_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o contrariwise_o we_o may_v by_o the_o way_n draw_v this_o consequence_n that_o see_v moses_n as_o they_o say_v be_v head_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n and_o aaron_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o one_o without_o far_a intermeddle_v with_o the_o other_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n &_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n now_o if_o they_o reply_v that_o they_o be_v able_a enough_o to_o exercise_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o general_a lieutenantshippe_n of_o christ_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n without_o call_v they_o to_o the_o practice_v which_o yet_o never_o be_v see_v i_o demand_v whether_o this_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n or_o by_o their_o own_o if_o by_o they_o why_o then_o this_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n for_o to_o covet_v and_o not_o to_o conduct_v and_o miserable_a be_v that_o church_n which_o be_v leave_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o vain_a spirit_n of_o these_o man_n who_o think_v themselves_o to_o have_v such_o abundance_n now_o if_o it_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n i_o do_v require_v they_o either_o that_o they_o will_v agree_v that_o this_o spirit_n follow_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o minister_n do_v give_v power_n to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n pronounce_v by_o they_o whereof_o follow_v that_o every_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n in_o his_o ministry_n occupy_v the_o room_n of_o christ_n visible_o or_o else_o that_o they_o prove_v unto_o we_o by_o fit_a &_o agreeable_a text_n that_o christ_n have_v enclose_v the_o root_n of_o his_o spirit_n so_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o it_o beside_o himself_o to_o be_v short_a the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o he_o govern_v his_o own_o give_v power_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n and_o to_o his_o sacrament_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o gospel_n consist_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o that_o word_n and_o of_o his_o sacrament_n now_o there_o be_v not_o any_o man_n that_o can_v boast_v to_o give_v and_o dispense_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o proceed_v not_o but_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n none_o then_o unless_o it_o be_v christ_n god_n and_o man_n can_v be_v the_o essential_a head_n of_o the_o church_n likewise_o no_o man_n can_v preach_v the_o word_n &_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n throughout_o the_o world_n none_o therefore_o can_v be_v the_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o rather_o each_o minister_n &_o pastor_n in_o his_o own_o right_n under_o the_o pastor_n of_o pastor_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n if_o he_o be_v so_o they_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o this_o be_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n for_o otherwise_o and_o without_o his_o commandment_n he_o will_v never_o have_v presume_v to_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o such_o a_o dignity_n likewise_o if_o our_o lord_n have_v place_v he_o in_o any_o such_o degree_n and_o so_o necessary_a as_o they_o say_v for_o the_o church_n they_o will_v grant_v i_o that_o saint_n peter_n have_v exercise_v this_o office_n for_o otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v to_o leave_v the_o church_n for_o a_o pray_v and_o confusion_n if_o then_o christ_n have_v not_o institute_v it_o nor_o s._n peter_n exercise_v it_o it_o must_v follow_v that_o he_o be_v never_o the_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o first_o point_n etibiglossa_n the_o whole_a gospel_n throughout_o teach_v we_o nothing_o but_o humility_n that_o we_o shall_v become_v little_a child_n and_o poor_a in_o spirit_n etc_n etc_n christ_n set_v forth_o himself_o for_o a_o example_n to_o his_o apostle_n 20.25_o and_o will_v that_o his_o apostle_n be_v example_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o be_o say_v he_o your_o master_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o i_o be_o amongst_o you_o to_o serve_v you_o also_o 22.25_o when_o there_o be_v strife_n among_o the_o apostle_n at_o two_o sundry_a time_n who_o shall_v be_v chief_a christ_n pronounce_v this_o determination_n he_o that_o will_v be_v the_o great_a or_o chief_a amongst_o you_o let_v he_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o al._n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o learn_v of_o i_o domini_fw-la he_o say_v not_o say_v saint_n augustine_n to_o work_v miracle_n nor_o to_o make_v a_o new_a world_n but_o that_o i_o be_o mild_a and_o humble_a of_o heart_n and_o as_o touch_v s._n peter_n he_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n by_o his_o brother_n andrew_n to_o the_o end_n to_o be_v his_o companion_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v the_o chief_a or_o to_o have_v any_o primacy_n attribute_v unto_o he_o again_o when_o they_o be_v send_v forth_o to_o preach_v 22.30_o they_o go_v two_o by_o two_o as_o companion_n which_o exclude_v all_o superiority_n when_o christ_n promise_v that_o they_o shall_v judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 19.30_o sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n he_o give_v not_o he_o a_o place_n above_o the_o rest_n to_o govern_v in_o when_o the_o triumphant_a church_n likewise_o be_v describe_v unto_o we_o by_o saint_n john_n 21._o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o city_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n and_o upon_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n without_o mention_v of_o any_o great_a stone_n for_o peter_n throne_n above_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v short_a when_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 20._o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v 28._o commandment_n to_o preach_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o descend_v down_o upon_o they_o 1_n this_o be_v when_o they_o be_v all_o gather_v together_o &_o without_o any_o prerogative_n of_o one_o more_o than_o the_o other_o hitherto_o then_o in_o the_o principal_a place_n where_o the_o primacy_n shall_v have_v be_v show_v we_o see_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o appearance_n thereof_o against_o these_o place_n plain_o deny_v and_o forbid_v the_o primacy_n they_o allege_v unto_o we_o that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v unto_o peter_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n 16._o &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la etc_n etc_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o now_o upon_o this_o place_n our_o adversary_n ground_n this_o proposition_n the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o saint_n peter_n and_o we_o will_v draw_v another_o 10._o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o name_n that_o of_o they_o be_v found_v upon_o this_o that_o it_o be_v say_v tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n that_o of_o we_o upon_o this_o that_o it_o be_v say_v super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la &_o non_fw-la super_fw-la te_fw-la petrun_v that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n &_o not_o upon_o thou_o peter_n and_o hereof_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v clear_o distinguish_v petrum_fw-la a_o petra_n that_o be_v to_o say_v simon_n peter_n from_o the_o lively_a rock_n whereupon_o he_o have_v build_v his_o church_n change_v
we_o wherein_o it_o consist_v if_o they_o can_v not_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v ministerial_a foundation_n as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o not_o found_v upon_o he_o and_o so_o likewise_o must_v it_o be_v of_o all_o the_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o they_o as_o saint_n jerome_n say_v upon_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o galatian_n and_o according_a to_o this_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 22._o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o he_o glory_v that_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o many_o place_n without_o building_n upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o any_o other_o saint_n john_n likewise_o that_o the_o city_n of_o god_n be_v set_v upon_o twelve_o foundation_n wherein_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o one_o as_o another_o and_o moreover_o that_o saint_n paul_n have_v build_v without_o any_o foundation_n 1._o not_o build_v upon_o peter_n ministry_n or_o else_o the_o peter_n be_v not_o that_o foundation_n again_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o if_o this_o ministry_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v all_o preacher_n of_o salvation_n in_o christ_n be_v therein_o master_n builder_n and_o all_o they_o be_v builder_n which_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o be_v lay_v by_o they_o upon_o that_o live_a rock_n now_o if_o they_o be_v all_o master_n builder_n why_o then_o saint_n peter_n be_v not_o the_o foundation_n for_o he_o can_v not_o be_v both_o the_o foundation_n and_o a_o master_n builder_n both_o together_o key_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la etc_n etc_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o which_o thou_o shall_v bind_v in_o earth_n etc_n etc_n of_o this_o text_n we_o further_o draw_v two_o contrary_a proposition_n they_o be_v christ_n have_v give_v here_o to_o peter_n alone_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o so_o consequent_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n we_o contrariwise_o be_v that_o christ_n here_o have_v promise_v the_o key_n to_o all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o they_o to_o all_o those_o which_o lawful_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n of_o his_o gospel_n if_o we_o know_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o key_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o bind_v and_o to_o loose_v it_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o we_o to_o judge_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o proposition_n be_v true_a christ_n jesus_n pronounce_v woe_n be_v to_o you_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n 11.51_o because_o you_o have_v take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n you_o have_v not_o enter_v in_o yourselves_o and_o those_o which_o will_v willing_o have_v enter_v in_o you_o have_v forbid_v now_o these_o doctor_n be_v those_o who_o have_v charge_n to_o teach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n these_o key_n than_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o charge_n to_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o open_v the_o gate_n thereof_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o concern_v bind_v and_o lose_v saint_n john_n expound_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o these_o word_n to_o retain_v and_o to_o remit_v sin_n 20.23_o the_o which_o be_v not_o do_v but_o in_o preach_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n display_v in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o key_n then_o be_v the_o charge_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n to_o bind_v and_o to_o loose_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o word_n which_o to_o one_o sort_n turn_v to_o their_o salvation_n to_o the_o other_o to_o their_o great_a damnation_n whereupon_o saint_n paul_n call_v his_o ministry_n 5.18_o the_o ministry_n and_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o else_o where_o the_o ministry_n of_o vengeance_n upon_o the_o disobedient_a 61.2_o which_o esai_n before_o have_v call_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o no_o one_o alone_o can_v exercise_v this_o ministry_n in_o every_o place_n nor_o towards_o all_o it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o one_o alone_o can_v not_o have_v these_o key_n nor_o this_o charge_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_n which_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christie_n extend_v itself_o to_o all_o place_n they_o demand_v then_o wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v unto_o all_o who_o think_v you_o that_o i_o be_o and_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o have_v answer_v thou_o be_v christ_n etc_n etc_n and_o therefore_o in_o his_o name_n he_o promise_v to_o all_o his_o church_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o he_o promise_v also_o afterwards_o to_o all_o in_o the_o eighteen_o chapter_n and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n deliver_v they_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n equal_o and_o without_o any_o difference_n in_o these_o word_n 20._o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o all_o those_o to_o who_o you_o shall_v remit_v their_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v remit_v etc_n etc_n that_o then_o that_o be_v promise_v here_o in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o etc_n etc_n and_o not_o i_o do_v give_v thou_o which_o show_v the_o time_n to_o come_v be_v then_o full_o accomplish_v universal_o to_o all_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n it_o be_v there_o promise_v to_o all_o to_o be_v short_a if_o as_o saint_n gregory_n say_v saint_n peter_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o apostle_n 50._o till_o it_o be_v after_o his_o repentance_n in_o vain_a then_o do_v they_o upon_o this_o place_n trouble_v their_o brain_n pretend_v that_o by_o that_o place_n this_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o if_o they_o will_v say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v mean_v there_o by_o the_o key_n promise_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o key_n which_o be_v after_o his_o repentance_n give_v unto_o all_o we_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v here_o promise_v unto_o all_o the_o which_o we_o say_v not_o to_o the_o end_n to_o derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o s._n peter_n who_o readiness_n to_o confess_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o zeal_n towards_o our_o saviour_n be_v incomparable_a but_o to_o discover_v the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o his_o poleshorne_a generation_n that_o of_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n give_v to_o saint_n peter_n have_v make_v a_o key_n of_o power_n and_o of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n a_o tyranny_n over_o all_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n a_o temporal_a monarchy_n notwithstanding_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n that_o christ_n have_v teach_v his_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n they_o have_v understand_v it_o not_o otherwise_o then_o we_o do_v praelatorum_fw-la saint_n cyprian_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n give_v the_o key_n to_o all_o to_o show_v the_o unity_n of_o all_o the_o other_o nevertheless_o be_v even_o the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v companion_n in_o like_a equal_a honour_n &_o in_o equal_a power_n but_o he_o will_v begin_v by_o one_o man_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o saint_n hierome_n expound_v this_o self_n same_o place_n the_o ignorant_a bishop_n and_o elder_n say_v he_o take_v hereby_o occasion_n to_o usurp_v i_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o pharisaical_a authority_n coden_z think_v that_o they_o have_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v at_o their_o pleasure_n but_o to_o bind_v &_o loose_v aught_o to_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o declare_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n god_n sentence_n behold_v then_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o cephas_n a_o caiphas_n even_o by_o the_o difinitive_a sentence_n of_o s._n hierom_n a_o minister_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o else_o where_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o judicial_a power_n for_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n say_v unto_o they_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v remit_v they_o shall_v be_v remit_v in_o heaven_n etc_n etc_n all_o the_o church_n likewise_o in_o his_o elder_n &_o bishop_n but_o special_o peter_n receive_v it_o to_o the_o end_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v understand_v that_o he_o that_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v absolve_v from_o his_o sin_n nor_o enter_v into_o heaven_n he_o say_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o not_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o peter_n nor_o
and_o thereupon_o he_o add_v which_o feed_v the_o flock_n and_o yet_o eat_v not_o of_o the_o milk_n he_o be_v then_o a_o pastor_n thereof_o and_o yet_o nove_z will_v deny_v but_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v pastor_n aswell_o as_o he_o to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v be_v a_o witness_n for_o i_o before_o all_o man_n 9.21_o which_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o general_a then_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o none_o will_v conclude_v that_o the_o other_o be_v but_o under_o witness_n for_o our_o lord_n like_o wise_a have_v say_v universal_o to_o all_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o then_o say_v they_o be_v these_o word_n here_o direct_v to_o peter_n alone_o because_o that_o as_o peter_n alone_o have_v deny_v he_o thrice_o so_o likewise_o he_o ask_v three_o time_n whether_o he_o love_v he_o &_o for_o that_o by_o his_o triple_a denial_n he_o have_v lose_v his_o apostleship_n so_o by_o that_o threefold_a commandment_n his_o commission_n be_v renew_v to_o the_o end_n his_o companion_n shall_v nevertheless_o esteem_v he_o for_o a_o apostle_n this_o therefore_o be_v rather_o a_o consolation_n for_o his_o infirmity_n than_o a_o mark_n of_o dignity_n saint_n augustine_n who_o be_v otherwise_o courteous_a enough_o find_v out_o no_o other_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n for_o see_v what_o he_o say_v upon_o saint_n john_n locum_fw-la where_o he_o have_v plain_o expound_v this_o place_n in_o stead_n say_v he_o of_o that_o threefold_a denial_n behold_v a_o triple_a confession_n to_o the_o end_n the_o tongue_n shall_v not_o less_o serve_v to_o love_v then_o to_o fear_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v not_o that_o present_a death_n draw_v from_o he_o more_o word_n then_o present_a life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n that_o this_o than_o shall_v be_v the_o office_n of_o love_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o our_o lord_n see_v that_o that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o fear_n to_o have_v deny_v the_o pastor_n himself_o what_o mean_v this_o then_o if_o thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n that_o be_v to_o say_v feed_v not_o thou_o thyself_o but_o feed_v my_o sheep_n feed_v they_o not_o for_o thyself_o but_o for_o i_o not_o for_o desire_v to_o bear_v dominion_n but_o for_o charity_n sake_n to_o help_v they_o this_o exposition_n also_o both_o hylarius_n &_o cyril_n have_v upon_o the_o same_o place_n 62._o also_o christ_n recommend_v his_o lamb_n to_o peter_n even_o he_o which_o feed_v peter_n himself_o understand_v they_o brethren_n with_o obedience_n that_o you_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n as_o all_o we_o which_o hear_v his_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n s._n aug._n therefore_o think_v it_o to_o be_v as_o much_o speak_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v b._n of_o bonne_fw-fr in_o africa_n as_o to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n follow_v the_o admonition_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o praelatorum_fw-la that_o which_o i_o say_v unto_o one_o i_o say_v unto_o al._n s._n cyprian_n all_o be_v pastor_n but_o there_o be_v but_o one_o flock_n which_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v feed_v with_o one_o whole_a consent_n 41._o also_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishopric_n whereof_o every_o b._n in_o solidum_fw-la &_o without_o separation_n hold_v his_o part_n &_o this_o be_v repeat_v by_o gratian_n in_o his_o decretal_n in_o express_a word_n which_o some_o of_o the_o schoolman_n yea_o &_o the_o sorbonist_n themselves_o have_v expound_v in_o these_o word_n the_o priesthood_n or_o ministry_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o be_v whole_a in_o all_o and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n to_o be_v short_a it_o can_v be_v find_v for_o many_o age_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o this_o place_n have_v be_v allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o any_o strength_n or_o power_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v acknowledge_v pastor_n of_o pastor_n and_o if_o they_o will_v in_o this_o behalf_n believe_v their_o own_o mass_n book_n miss_n behold_v what_o they_o sing_v every_o day_n it_o be_v very_o meet_v right_a &_o healthful_a to_o pray_v unto_o thou_o at_o all_o time_n oh_o eternal_a pastor_n that_o thou_o shall_v not_o forsake_v thy_o flock_n but_o shall_v keep_v it_o by_o thy_o holy_a apostle_n with_o a_o continual_a protection_n to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v have_v for_o governor_n &_o guide_n such_o as_o thou_o have_v establish_v unto_o it_o for_o vicar_n of_o thy_o work_n &_o pasture_n behold_v therefore_o all_o the_o apostle_n even_o by_o their_o own_o mass_n itself_o to_o be_v rector_n pastor_n and_o vicar_n immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o immediate_o establish_v from_o he_o and_o if_o in_o peter_n own_o cause_n they_o will_v be_v content_a to_o have_v saint_n peter_n judge_v himself_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o beseech_v which_o also_o be_o a_o elder_a say_v he_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o etc_n not_o as_o have_v lordship_n over_o the_o heritage_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o as_o example_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n shall_v appear_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o incorruptible_a crown_n of_o glory_n he_o that_o will_v play_v the_o sophister_n as_o they_o do_v upon_o these_o word_n feed_v the_o flock_n will_v conclude_v that_o peter_n have_v resign_v his_o church_n to_o they_o but_o it_o suffice_v we_o that_o s._n peter_n call_v not_o himself_o pastor_n of_o pastor_n but_o send_v they_o to_o the_o principal_a pastor_n who_o be_v jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o in_o that_o 10._o some_o object_n these_o word_n there_o shall_v be_v one_o fold_n and_o one_o shepherd_n apply_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n they_o do_v yet_o worse_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text_n show_v we_o that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n &_o thereupon_o s._n gregory_n in_o their_o gloze_n say_v fold_n that_o this_o be_v speak_v because_o christ_n have_v join_v both_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o gentile_a in_o his_o faith_n &_o theophilus_n because_o all_o the_o sheep_n have_v but_o one_o mark_n to_o wit_n baptism_n &_o but_o one_o pasture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god._n but_o see_v one_o other_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v not_o fear_v to_o begin_v to_o triumph_n as_o if_o they_o have_v get_v a_o sword_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o defend_v this_o interpretation_n jesus_n christ_n draw_v near_o unto_o his_o passion_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n 22.33_o when_o i_o send_v you_o without_o bag_n or_o scrip_n etc_n etc_n lack_v you_o any_o thing_n they_o answer_v nothing_o but_o now_o he_o that_o have_v a_o bag_n let_v he_o take_v it_o and_o likewise_o a_o scrip_n &_o he_o that_o have_v none_o let_v he_o sell_v his_o coat_n and_o buy_v a_o sword_n for_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v write_v must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o i_o he_o be_v repute_v with_o the_o wicked_a then_o the_o apostle_n say_v behold_v here_o two_o sword_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o there_o be_v none_o but_o clear_o see_v by_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o text_n alone_o that_o he_o forewarn_v his_o disciple_n of_o the_o enterprise_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v against_o he_o for_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o must_v not_o provide_v any_o carnal_a weapon_n in_o mean_a season_n see_v the_o wander_a conclusion_n which_o the_o pope_n fetch_v from_o thence_o in_o their_o extravagaunt_n it_o be_v say_v behold_v here_o two_o sword_n ergo_fw-la saint_n peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v head_n all_o the_o world_n through_o aswell_o of_o the_o temporal_a as_o of_o the_o spiritual_a this_o be_v that_o goodly_a decree_n of_o boniface_n the_o eight_o for_o which_o king_n philip_n the_o fair_a be_v excommunicate_v which_o decree_n begin_v unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc_n etc_n that_o be_v to_o say_v obedientia_fw-la that_o we_o must_v believe_v one_o holy_a universal_a church_n &_o end_v with_o this_o conclusion_n we_o declare_v say_v dispute_v of_o and_o determine_v that_o for_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o every_o creature_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o here_o be_v no_o question_n of_o s._n peter_n for_o he_o be_v not_o particular_o name_v but_o of_o al._n also_o there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o bear_v rule_n but_o to_o be_v persecute_v and_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o cut_v of_o all_o this_o at_o one_o blow_n when_o he_o make_v peter_n to_o put_v up_o his_o sword_n into_o his_o sheath_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v be_v so_o impudent_a that_o they_o have_v enterprise_v upon_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o place_n to_o bear_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n &_o both_o
time_n to_o time_n how_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o man_n law_n and_o that_o which_o we_o call_v positive_a they_o hold_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v crucify_v under_o nero_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 69_o and_o that_o clement_n succeed_v he_o other_o say_v that_o linus_n succeed_v he_o than_o saint_n john_n yea_o and_o james_n himself_o if_o we_o believe_v those_o book_n suppose_v to_o be_v clement_n they_o shall_v have_v obey_v clement_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o succeed_v as_o they_o say_v in_o peter_n authority_n &_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v no_o less_o authority_n than_o the_o pope_n at_o this_o day_n who_o can_v dispense_v with_o paul_n epistle_n a_o wonderful_a case_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o they_o make_v the_o canon_n of_o those_o book_n that_o shall_v have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v rather_o put_v in_o those_o book_n of_o james_n and_o john_n then_o of_o clement_n the_o principal_a heir_n and_o successor_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o saint_n peter_n chair_n a_o wonderful_a matter_n further_o 3._o that_o this_o clement_n make_v so_o small_a account_n of_o succession_n so_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n see_v that_o in_o his_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v to_o james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o call_v he_o our_o lord_n brother_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o all_o other_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n but_o yet_o a_o more_o wonderful_a matter_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v so_o impudent_a in_o the_o light_n of_o good_a learning_n that_o at_o this_o day_n shine_v as_o to_o found_v the_o papacy_n upon_o those_o gay_a book_n of_o clement_n in_o which_o there_o be_v so_o many_o falsehoode_n clement_n write_v to_o saint_n james_n after_o peter_n death_n and_o teach_v he_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o s._n james_n be_v martyr_v long_o before_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v he_o be_v to_o teach_v clement_n such_o matter_n and_o not_o to_o learn_v they_o of_o he_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o notable_a author_n that_o they_o can_v allege_v but_o let_v we_o proceed_v we_o hold_v the_o apostle_n creed_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o we_o there_o find_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o this_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o make_v be_v not_o therein_o that_o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v we_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o sovereign_a lord_n saint_n cyprian_n say_v 5._o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishopric_n of_o which_o every_o bishop_n hold_v his_o part_n whole_o without_o any_o division_n also_o that_o none_o of_o his_o time_n either_o call_v or_o make_v himself_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n either_o make_v through_o tyranny_n his_o companion_n subject_a to_o his_o obedience_n also_o he_o complain_v that_o certain_a profane_a man_n and_o schismatic_n with_o drew_n themselves_o to_o the_o bish_n of_o rome_n who_o say_v he_o have_v none_o but_o certain_a desperate_a &_o wicked_a fellow_n that_o stay_v upon_o he_o make_v then selue_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n have_v less_o power_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o call_v not_o stephen_n &_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n other_o they_o brethren_n &_o companion_n &_o handle_v stephen_n rude_o enough_o in_o many_o place_n to_o be_v short_a a_o little_a after_o his_o death_n sedis_fw-la the_o church_n of_o africa_n decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o prince_n or_o chief_a of_o minister_n or_o the_o first_o bishop_n but_o only_o according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o city_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see._n irenee_n very_o lively_o reprove_v victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 24._o who_o through_o a_o certain_a shameless_a ambition_n have_v excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n for_o disagree_v about_o the_o passeover_n the_o minister_n say_v he_o which_o have_v hold_v the_o eldership_n of_o the_o church_n over_o which_o thou_o now_o do_v govern_v anicetus_n pius_n higinus_n etc_n etc_n have_v not_o do_v as_o thou_o have_v do_v neither_o they_o also_o which_o be_v with_o they_o ▪_o tertullian_n who_o otherwise_o be_v wont_a to_o attribute_v very_o much_o to_o saint_n peter_n scorn_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o his_o great_a ambition_n which_o then_o begin_v to_o show_v itself_o &_o albeit_o in_o a_o certain_a place_n he_o make_v a_o long_a narration_n of_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o he_o teach_v not_o neither_o near_a nor_o far_o of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v the_o infallible_a seat_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o peter_n succession_n and_o yet_o these_o be_v for_o all_o that_o the_o very_a first_o of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o in_o who_o time_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n more_o flourish_v then_o at_o any_o time_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n as_o the_o church_n have_v more_o liberty_n so_o it_o have_v also_o more_o ambition_n &_o then_o bishop_n begin_v first_o to_o think_v on_o mitre_n that_o before_o time_n think_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v martyr_n that_o same_o famous_a council_n of_o nice_a be_v then_o call_v together_o by_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n synodi_fw-la to_o the_o end_n to_o decide_v the_o matter_n of_o arrius_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n deputy_n be_v there_o but_o they_o sit_v only_o in_o the_o four_o place_n yea_o one_o decree_n be_v there_o make_v 6._o by_o which_o certain_a limit_n be_v attribute_v to_o every_o patriarch_n over_o which_o the_o canon_n give_v they_o equal_a authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v over_o the_o neighbour_fw-mi church_n of_o his_o city_n they_o go_v about_o by_o infinite_a mean_n to_o corrupt_v the_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n as_o the_o history_n do_v witness_n unto_o we_o but_o cusan_a the_o cardinal_n allege_v this_o council_n acknowledge_v the_o truth_n in_o these_o word_n by_o this_o we_o see_v 1●_o say_v he_o how_o much_o authority_n the_o pope_n have_v get_v in_o our_o time_n against_o the_o sacred_a ancient_a constitution_n and_o altogether_o through_o the_o length_n of_o time_n and_o custom_n of_o a_o slavish_a subiectionall_a obedience_n and_o yet_o in_o mean_a time_n julius_n with_o stand_v it_o not_o neither_o do_v his_o legate_n allege_v to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n their_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o nor_o their_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n for_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o study_v so_o deep_o therein_o but_o they_o rest_v only_o in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o council_n which_o afterwards_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n 2._o and_o of_o constantinople_n and_o this_o be_v about_o the_o time_n that_o they_o will_v devise_v the_o donation_n of_o constantine_n to_o pope_n sylvester_n confute_v by_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n so_o long_a time_n ago_o that_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a will_v believe_v it_o but_o if_o they_o will_v believe_v the_o original_n vatican_n which_o be_v keep_v in_o vatican_n in_o the_o pope_n library_n in_o golden_a letter_n let_v they_o also_o believe_v these_o word_n which_o be_v write_v &_o add_v in_o the_o end_n quam_fw-la fabulam_fw-la longi_fw-la temporis_fw-la mendacia_fw-la finxit_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o proper_a word_n of_o ill_a latin_a this_o be_v a_o fable_n which_o a_o old_a lie_n have_v forge_v or_o if_o they_o will_v therein_o believe_v the_o legend_n of_o pope_n sylvester_n then_o let_v they_o also_o believe_v that_o which_o it_o say_v syluestri_n that_o then_o be_v hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v hodie_fw-la effusum_fw-la est_fw-la venenum_fw-la in_o ecclesiam_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o this_o day_n poison_n be_v shed_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n cyrillus_n and_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n do_v govern_v there_o though_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v his_o deputy_n 45._o and_o it_o force_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o second_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o this_o can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o issue_n but_o it_o suffice_v that_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o then_o when_o man_n think_v that_o it_o be_v very_o lawful_a and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o time_n as_o the_o ceremony_n be_v keep_v there_o leo_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n epistolis_fw-la neither_o his_o deputy_n do_v not_o there_o strive_v for_o the_o chief_a place_n because_o they_o think_v it_o to_o have_v no_o good_a ground_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n
they_o deem_v spoil_v himself_o of_o his_o empire_n to_o enrich_v they_o chrysost_n say_v 23._o whosoever_o of_o the_o bishop_n shall_v desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n he_o shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n &_o he_o that_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a he_o shall_v not_o be_v repute_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n will_v attribute_v unto_o himself_o that_o supremacy_n 194._o he_o say_v not_o that_o he_o do_v wrong_a to_o saint_n peter_n or_o that_o he_o withhold_v &_o usurp_v the_o right_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o rather_o he_o protest_v that_o this_o be_v a_o profane_a title_n full_a of_o sacrilege_n and_o the_o fore-running_a of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o this_o be_v to_o say_v with_o lucifer_n i_o will_v ascend_v above_o the_o cloud_n and_o will_v make_v myself_o equal_a to_o the_o high_a god._n 99_o that_o none_o of_o his_o predecessor_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v above_o their_o brethren_n &_o companion_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o amongst_o they_o he_o fall_v down_o all_o the_o church_n shall_v stumble_v &_o fall_v with_o he_o that_o this_o be_v to_o destroy_v all_o christianity_n and_o after_o many_o such_o other_o word_n he_o pronounce_v this_o general_a sentence_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n or_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v so_o call_v that_o he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n forasmuch_o as_o through_o pride_n he_o axalt_v himself_o above_o all_o as_o touch_v himself_o he_o flat_o refuse_v it_o regist_n and_o pray_v eulogius_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n not_o to_o give_v he_o this_o proud_a name_n he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n be_v as_o well_o in_o peter_n chair_n as_o they_o of_o rome_n to_o be_v short_a that_o peter_n paul_n andrew_n john_n etc_n etc_n they_o be_v all_o particular_a head_n of_o the_o people_n who_o they_o govern_v but_o all_o member_n under_o one_o head_n which_o be_v christ_n howsoever_o they_o hold_v peter_n for_o chief_a amongst_o they_o i_o beseech_v the_o reader_n that_o they_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o read_v upon_o this_o matter_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n gregory_n and_o there_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o condemnation_n of_o this_o supremacy_n more_o express_o then_o yet_o i_o have_v say_v to_o conclude_v the_o emperor_n have_v call_v general_a council_n &_o the_o patriarch_n and._n metropolitan_n those_o that_o be_v nationall_n and_o provincial_a they_o that_o be_v patriarch_n every_o one_o be_v precedent_n over_o the_o see_v of_o his_o patriarchshippe_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o his_o deputy_n in_o general_a council_n the_o patriarch_n or_o chief_a bishop_n go_v not_o to_o seek_v their_o pall_v at_o rome_n but_o be_v canonical_o elect_v over_o those_o place_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o epistle_n themselves_o of_o gregory_n the_o great_a when_o he_o be_v choose_v 169._o exhibit_v unto_o they_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n by_o a_o synodall_n epistle_n as_o they_o do_v to_o he_o each_o one_o of_o they_o have_v a_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n over_o his_o own_o and_o none_o appeal_v from_o they_o no_o not_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o beyond_o the_o sea_n who_o have_v no_o patriarch_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n i_o demand_v then_o by_o what_o mark_v they_o can_v show_v we_o that_o supremacy_n in_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n be_v it_o but_o by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v the_o course_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o from_o council_n to_o council_n until_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n six_o hundred_o and_o more_o when_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n kill_v his_o master_n maurice_n and_o invade_v the_o empire_n and_o to_o get_v favour_n of_o the_o roman_n after_o so_o curse_a and_o detestable_a murder_n gain_v boniface_n the_o three_o their_o bishop_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n against_o that_o that_o gregory_n his_o predecessor_n have_v a_o little_a before_o so_o hotelye_o fight_v against_o if_o the_o church_n have_v be_v so_o long_a time_n without_o a_o head_n what_o do_v the_o member_n then_o and_o if_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n then_o why_o less_o now_o also_o whence_o come_v it_o that_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v for_o such_o a_o one_o it_o have_v such_o strength_n and_o always_o afterward_o grow_v weak_a and_o decay_v again_o be_v it_o not_o notable_a that_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v ignorant_a of_o so_o healthful_a a_o doctrine_n hide_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o boniface_n the_o three_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o that_o shall_v find_v it_o out_o that_o such_o so_o necessary_a privilege_n shall_v be_v conceal_v for_o the_o space_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n in_o the_o most_o happy_a age_n and_o to_o the_o most_o quick_a sight_v person_n which_o ever_o be_v that_o so_o many_o christian_a emperor_n shall_v make_v no_o account_n of_o it_o and_o one_o phocas_n a_o execrable_a murderer_n shall_v be_v the_o first_o to_o give_v authority_n unto_o it_o but_o as_o the_o papacy_n must_v needs_o spring_v of_o the_o ruin_n of_o rome_n &_o the_o second_o beast_n of_o the_o carrion_n of_o the_o first_o so_o also_o must_v it_o needs_o he_o that_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o of_o the_o first_o king_n be_v must_v be_v found_v and_o build_v upon_o murder_n against_o these_o decree_n of_o the_o general_a council_n they_o blush_v not_o to_o allege_v unto_o we_o those_o goodly_a book_n of_o clement_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v a_o little_a before_o that_o same_o ridiculous_a epistle_n of_o anaclet_n rogamus_fw-la that_o cephas_n be_v asmuch_o to_o say_v as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o same_o authentical_a revelation_n of_o pope_n marcellus_n of_o peter_n seat_n to_o be_v remove_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n vlt._n and_o such_o other_o beggarly_a trumpery_n of_o that_o decree_n which_o some_o even_o of_o their_o own_o side_n do_v deride_v also_o certain_a other_o epistle_n of_o pope_n leo_n who_o labour_v thereby_o asmuch_o as_n he_o can_v to_o make_v we_o credit_v the_o latin_a church_n but_o we_o know_v that_o none_o must_v be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o if_o as_o gerson_n &_o panormitan_n say_v one_o lay_v man_n may_v set_v himself_o have_v the_o holy_a scripture_n on_o his_o side_n against_o a_o whole_a general_a council_n which_o err_v from_o it_o by_o a_o more_o strong_a reason_n may_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n oppose_v itself_o &_o all_o the_o whole_a scripture_n have_v all_o the_o general_a council_n on_o her_o side_n that_o be_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n against_o the_o tyranny_n of_o one_o man_n alone_o which_o can_v allege_v any_o thing_n but_o his_o own_o ambition_n yea_o &_o against_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o some_o pope_n &_o yet_o for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o shuffle_v in_o under_o the_o name_n of_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n rome_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v notwithstanding_o that_o a_o good_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o attempt_v to_o establish_v a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n at_o rome_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o temporal_a which_o make_v they_o to_o be_v envy_v for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n begin_v by_o abel_n as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v and_o babylon_n by_o cain_n and_o likewise_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o very_o quick_o after_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v lay_v satan_n lay_v also_o the_o foundation_n of_o antichrist_n 2._o in_o paul_n his_o time_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v when_o one_o say_v that_o he_o be_v of_o apollo_n another_o that_o he_o be_v of_o paul_n and_o another_o of_o cephas_n victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n enterprise_v to_o excommunicate_v all_o asia_n for_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n 6._o but_o he_o be_v most_o lively_o reprove_v by_o irenee_n steven_n also_o receive_v the_o schismatic_n of_o africa_n against_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n but_o cyprian_n call_v he_o proud_a and_o ignorant_a and_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n hold_v about_o the_o self_n same_o time_n set_v itself_o against_o he_o julius_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n begin_v to_o establish_v his_o empire_n but_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a limit_v he_o his_o power_n bring_v he_o to_o the_o bound_n and_o skantling_n of_o other_o yea_o 5.4.101.105_o in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o saint_n augustine_n be_v present_a three_o bishop_n of_o rome_n one_o after_o another_o
be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o falsify_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a bring_v forth_o in_o stead_n thereof_o the_o article_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardes_n yet_o corrupt_v and_o falsify_v pretend_v that_o from_o all_o part_n man_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n have_v learn_v well_o to_o say_v that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v those_o production_n and_o therefore_o send_v to_o the_o original_n and_o they_o be_v see_v they_o pronounce_v the_o quite_o contrary_a leo_fw-la the_o first_o receive_v eutyches_n condemn_v by_o flavianus_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n &_o for_o a_o time_n maintain_v he_o against_o he_o whereupon_o his_o heresy_n first_o take_v foot_v and_o grow_v which_o may_v then_o at_o once_o have_v be_v quench_v but_o none_o approve_v this_o usurpation_n to_o be_v short_a in_o the_o time_n of_o chrysostome_n this_o ambition_n be_v so_o great_a amongst_o they_o that_o he_o complain_v that_o to_o obtain_v supremacy_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v fill_v the_o church_n with_o blood_n &_o have_v defile_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o murder_n until_o they_o have_v utter_o for_o it_o destroy_v whole_a city_n and_o he_o that_o will_v see_v the_o civil_a war_n for_o they_o likewise_o name_v they_o which_o be_v at_o rome_n between_o damasus_n and_o vrsicius_fw-la in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n hierome_n whether_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v bishop_n and_o afterward_o between_o laurence_n and_o symmachus_n pontificalis_fw-la he_o may_v read_v they_o in_o ruffinus_n amian_n marcellin_n and_o their_o own_o pontifical_a itself_o and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v all_o the_o contention_n that_o be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n yea_o till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o murder_n of_o phocas_n for_o the_o supremacy_n look_v how_o many_o they_o be_v they_o be_v always_o argument_n from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o as_o determine_v sentence_n against_o they_o in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o always_o lose_v their_o cause_n whatsoever_o instance_n they_o make_v or_o whatsoever_o diligence_n they_o use_v in_o plead_v of_o it_o how_o but_o they_o will_v object_n unto_o i_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v hold_v the_o chief_a place_n amongst_o the_o patriarch_n i_o agree_v thereto_o but_o yet_o i_o defy_v that_o it_o be_v to_o command_v other_o and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n 99_o but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see._n i_o say_v moreover_o that_o this_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o less_o by_o virtue_n of_o those_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o because_o that_o in_o seat_n there_o must_v be_v a_o first_o &_o a_o second_o place_n according_a to_o humame_a order_n i_o say_v that_o this_o be_v ordain_v in_o consideration_n of_o that_o order_n whereby_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v above_o other_o if_o it_o have_v be_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o wonderful_a thing_n that_o for_o 600._o year_n together_o these_o mystery_n shall_v have_v be_v hide_v from_o the_o church_n if_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o founder_n why_o not_o rather_o at_o antioch_n and_o at_o alexandria_n after_o gregory_n 13._o or_o to_o all_o other_o bishopric_n after_o cusan_a who_o say_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v peter_n successor_n equal_a in_o the_o essential_a dignity_n although_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o administration_n and_o government_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n themselves_o have_v dispute_v in_o the_o last_o council_n of_o trent_n moreover_o that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v the_o first_o and_o not_o the_o four_o see_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n do_v there_o govern_v or_o why_o be_v antioch_n whereof_o saint_n peter_n be_v bishop_n put_v after_o alexandria_n which_o can_v allege_v nothing_o but_o the_o succession_n of_o saint_n mark_v his_o disciple_n to_o be_v short_a what_o hurt_n have_v saint_n john_n the_o well-beloved_a disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v unto_o they_o who_o so_o long_a time_n preach_v in_o ephesus_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o number_v amongst_o the_o patriarchal_a city_n or_o what_o new_a apostle_n have_v found_v constantinople_n three_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o attribute_v unto_o it_o the_o second_o see_v but_o there_o be_v none_o that_o have_v but_o a_o little_a judgement_n that_o do_v not_o well_o enough_o mark_v that_o all_o the_o preeminence_n of_o these_o see_v rather_o proceed_v from_o the_o rank_n and_o place_n which_o their_o city_n hold_v then_o from_o the_o establishment_n of_o christian_a religion_n rome_n be_v then_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o world_n good_a learning_n there_o flourish_v it_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o when_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v gather_v together_o they_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o place_n for_o civility_n and_o courtesy_n sake_n likewise_o we_o read_v in_o the_o history_n that_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n be_v after_o rome_n the_o most_o famous_a city_n and_o according_a to_o that_o degree_n which_o their_o governor_n hold_v they_o also_o hold_v their_o bishopric_n and_o concern_v jerusalem_n that_o be_v so_o great_o account_v of_o for_o the_o first_o original_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o therefore_o likewise_o be_v not_o reckon_v in_o the_o least_o place_n for_o pliny_n call_v it_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o east_n but_o yet_o her_o place_n be_v ill_o keep_v after_o she_o have_v lose_v she_o first_o glory_n afterward_o constantinople_n come_v to_o be_v build_v which_o be_v call_v the_o second_o rome_n and_o then_o also_o we_o see_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n where_o there_o be_v six_o hundred_o bishop_n 231._o who_o give_v unto_o it_o the_o second_o place_n which_o have_v not_o be_v do_v if_o they_o have_v have_v regard_n to_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o founder_n and_o not_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o city_n by_o reason_n of_o who_o might_n also_o this_o dignity_n be_v confirm_v unto_o it_o by_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n aquila_n in_o italy_n be_v call_v the_o second_o rome_n also_o there_o be_v a_o patriarchship_n there_o establish_v yea_o ravenna_n itself_o be_v a_o long_a time_n hold_v not_o to_o be_v subject_n to_o rome_n and_o it_o have_v she_o own_o cardinal_n apart_o and_o by_o themselves_o and_o as_o venice_n begin_v to_o grow_v great_a so_o it_o have_v the_o patriarchship_n of_o grado_n for_o it_o to_o be_v short_a he_o that_o shall_v mark_v from_o country_n to_o country_n the_o erection_n of_o patriarchship_n and_o archbishopric_n he_o shall_v find_v no_o other_o consideration_n than_o this_o the_o same_o that_o pope_n lucinus_n say_v allege_v by_o gratian_n that_o at_o the_o first_o they_o institute_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o temporal_a policy_n decretis_fw-la also_o pope_n clement_n himself_o say_v that_o where_o there_o be_v chief_a priest_n of_o the_o painim_n there_o they_o establish_v primat_n of_o christian_n 12._o the_o which_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o same_o word_n by_o peter_n lombard_n in_o his_o four_o book_n of_o sentence_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o the_o earnest_a request_n of_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o the_o second_o see_v be_v give_v to_o the_o city_n constantinople_n use_v also_o the_o same_o word_n the_o father_n upon_o good_a right_a with_o one_o consent_n agree_v that_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o first_o see_n shall_v belong_v unto_o old_a rome_n because_o of_o the_o empire_n there_o and_o we_o also_o move_v with_o the_o same_o consideration_n agree_v that_o the_o second_o shall_v be_v at_o new_a rome_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o act_n of_o the_o same_o council_n the_o reason_n betwixt_o the_o bishop_n of_o nice_a &_o of_o basianopolis_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o such_o controversy_n this_o canon_n be_v there_o pass_v that_o these_o city_n only_o shall_v be_v hold_v for_o metropolitans_n 8_o to_o which_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v do_v this_o honour_n by_o their_o statute_n and_o the_o council_n of_o thurin_n there_o add_v that_o if_o the_o earthly_a superiority_n be_v translate_v from_o one_o city_n to_o another_o that_o then_o the_o right_n of_o the_o archbishopric_n shall_v be_v translate_v likewise_o to_o be_v short_a when_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v translate_v to_o new_a rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o constantinople_n we_o see_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n by_o &_o by_o take_v unto_o himself_o the_o primacy_n whereof_o they_o hold_v even_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v and_o when_o that_o
religion_n in_o great_a detestation_n &_o one_o sort_n of_o they_o be_v stiff_o in_o judaisme_n &_o the_o other_o persuade_v then selue_o that_o all_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o instrument_n of_o policy_n i_o ask_v then_o for_o conclusion_n for_o what_o worse_o we_o shall_v look_v from_o antichrist_n they_o to_o make_v christ_n unprofitable_a to_o christian_n &_o abominable_a to_o jew_n and_o painim_n shall_v we_o wait_v till_o he_o preach_v atheism_n and_o godlessness_n in_o temple_n yea_o but_o they_o which_o see_v but_o the_o sun_n &_o moon_n and_o the_o order_n of_o all_o thing_n will_v spit_v in_o his_o face_n what_o then_o till_o he_o preach_v the_o god_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o what_o difference_n shall_v we_o make_v between_o the_o worship_n of_o castor_n and_o pollux_n &_o that_o of_o saint_n ratherin_n and_o of_o saint_n nicholas_n see_v that_o both_o the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o make_v we_o quite_o to_o forget_v our_o salvation_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v leave_v preach_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o which_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o take_v possession_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o the_o pope_n &_o none_o other_o be_v antichrist_n who_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n have_v spoil_v christ_n of_o his_o place_n now_o add_v unto_o his_o doctrine_n ultimo_fw-la which_o be_v the_o essential_a mark_n the_o circumstance_n of_o person_n simoniake_n magician_n atheist_n whoremaster_n and_o sodomite_n of_o the_o place_n where_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o city_n with_o seven_o hill_n describe_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o the_o time_n of_o six_o hundred_o sixty_o six_o which_o fall_v out_o just_o to_o the_o time_n that_o the_o pope_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o universal_a bishop_n exempt_v from_o the_o subjection_n of_o any_o other_o and_o there_o can_v remain_v no_o more_o doubt_n that_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v he_o father_n now_o if_o any_o man_n will_v yet_o demand_v testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n from_o time_n to_o time_n first_o we_o have_v this_o that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a church_n be_v express_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o we_o have_v before_o mention_v they_o not_o be_v able_a any_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o stay_v or_o settle_v themselves_o thereon_o and_o concern_v the_o mark_n although_o they_o speak_v of_o they_o afar_o of_o yet_o they_o draw_v so_o nigh_o thereto_o that_o those_o which_o they_o deliver_v unto_o we_o to_o know_v he_o by_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o other_o then_o of_o he_o alone_o saint_n irenee_n 3._o who_o be_v a_o most_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scholar_n of_o polycarpe_n and_o polycarpe_n of_o saint_n john_n who_o write_v the_o apocalypse_n dispute_v of_o antichrist_n see_v he_o no_o where_o else_o but_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o namely_o he_o say_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n shall_v be_v his_o seat_n and_o that_o he_o prove_v after_o the_o opinion_n of_o his_o predecessor_n by_o the_o number_n of_o 666._o mention_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n 13._o which_o be_v find_v in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v latin_n and_o the_o latin_a church_n i_o allege_v not_o this_o to_o play_v the_o cabalist_n upon_o letter_n but_o to_o show_v that_o then_o they_o see_v that_o this_o monster_n must_v be_v bear_v at_o rome_n which_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n through_o the_o special_a grace_n of_o god_o to_o decay_v and_o totter_v saint_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n towards_o the_o decline_a or_o decay_v say_v he_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n 2._o antichrist_n shall_v come_v and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o this_o empire_n be_v so_o renown_a none_o will_v easy_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o but_o this_o be_v destroy_v he_o shall_v invade_v the_o power_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v void_a and_o shall_v take_v it_o to_o himself_o in_o somuch_o as_o he_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o empire_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n for_o as_o all_o kingdom_n which_o be_v before_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v destroy_v even_o so_o shall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v destroy_v by_o antichrist_n and_o he_o by_o christ_n &_o after_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o power_n 24._o the_o same_o teach_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v under_o the_o vizard_n of_o holiness_n and_o of_o miracle_n of_o superstition_n &_o counterfeit_a godliness_n now_o i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o that_o have_v read_v history_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o grow_v and_o come_v to_o it_o by_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o if_o it_o be_v by_o any_o other_o way_n than_o feign_a religion_n saint_n hylary_n take_v heed_n say_v he_o of_o antichrist_n auxentium_fw-la it_o be_v a_o vilennie_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v so_o mad_a at_o the_o wall_n you_o abuse_v yourselves_o in_o reverence_v goodly_a buyldyng_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v the_o place_n where_o antichrist_n shall_v have_v his_o seat_n it_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v that_o we_o search_v for_o he_o as_o some_o suppose_v amongst_o the_o barbarous_a but_o in_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a place_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n spiritu_fw-la saint_n hierome_n the_o minister_n write_v unto_o marcelia_n this_o babylon_n say_v he_o and_o this_o whore_n clothe_v with_o purple_n which_o be_v paint_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n can_v signify_v no_o other_o thing_n unto_o we_o but_o rome_n and_o he_o repeat_v the_o same_o in_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n mark_v and_o cusan_a the_o cardinal_n add_v 19_o that_o bede_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a interpreter_n have_v so_o expound_v it_o saint_n augustine_n babylon_n be_v the_o first_o rome_n &_o rome_n the_o second_o babylon_n also_o expound_v that_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n in_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_n antichrist_n shall_v come_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o one_o man_n alone_o but_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n be_v belong_v unto_o he_o who_o together_o with_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v antichrist_n and_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o though_o he_o and_o he_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n itself_o antichristo_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o shall_v renew_v idolatry_n he_o shall_v scatter_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o shall_v keep_v magician_n conjurer_n and_o enchauntter_n etc_n etc_n now_o every_o one_o know_v the_o false_a miracle_n wherewith_o he_o have_v abuse_v the_o people_n to_o lead_v they_o away_o from_o christ_n and_o he_o that_o will_v see_v how_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n come_v to_o their_o popedom_n by_o magic_n and_o sorcery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v how_o they_o be_v create_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o no_o more_o successor_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o simon_n the_o magician_n let_v they_o read_v that_o which_o their_o own_o story_n writer_n have_v write_v thereof_o as_o cardinal_n benno_n etc_n peter_n the_o praemonstratensis_fw-la monk_n volateran_n sabellicus_n and_o platina_n which_o i_o willing_o omit_v lest_o i_o make_v the_o reader_n quake_v for_o horror_n of_o such_o wickedness_n saint_n gregory_n bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o he_o be_v more_o near_o unto_o it_o than_o other_o so_o have_v he_o speak_v thereof_o more_o clear_o than_o those_o that_o go_v before_o he_o let_v it_o not_o seem_v a_o light_a thing_n say_v he_o unto_o thou_o imperatorem_fw-la that_o antichrist_n shall_v avouch_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n for_o i_o say_v confident_o and_o bold_o unto_o you_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n or_o minister_n and_o be_v so_o call_v he_o be_v the_o very_a forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n etc_n in_o other_o place_n he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v lucifer_n which_o advance_v himself_o above_o angel_n and_o will_v set_v himself_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o this_o be_v to_o bring_v to_o ruin_v the_o whole_a church_n etc_n etc_n now_o he_o speak_v this_o the_o more_o frank_o because_o it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n attribute_v unto_o himself_o that_o title_n but_o behold_v that_o a_o little_a after_o his_o death_n his_o universal_a foretell_v be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o person_n of_o pope_n boniface_n the_o third_o his_o successor_n who_o to_o accomplish_v that_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v foretell_v we_o by_o his_o apostle_n do_v so_o much_o prevail_v by_o his_o threaten_n that_o he_o obtain_v that_o title_n of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n the_o murderer_n of_o mauritius_n and_o his_o child_n and_o the_o pope_n follow_v have_v build_v
have_v cut_v we_o quite_o of_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o have_v proceed_v against_o we_o by_o fire_n and_o faggot_n by_o the_o sword_n by_o war_n &_o by_o massacre_n &_o cruel_a murder_n final_o we_o see_v that_o they_o will_v give_v no_o place_n to_o our_o word_n that_o they_o will_v not_o give_v we_o audience_n in_o a_o council_n that_o they_o excommunicate_v &_o chase_v we_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v from_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n for_o have_v preach_v christ_n we_o have_v begin_v to_o gather_v ourselves_o together_o to_o serve_v the_o lord_n first_o secret_o &_o in_o corner_n &_o afterwards_o more_o free_o &_o neither_o can_v we_o communicate_v with_o those_o idolatry_n bring_v in_o by_o antichrist_n nor_o at_o the_o first_o dash_n drive_v he_o from_o his_o seat_n for_o that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o their_o power_n uphold_v he_o &_o therefore_o we_o be_v enforce_v to_o deliver_v ourselves_o &_o all_o those_o that_o will_v hearken_v unto_o we_o from_o his_o servitude_n &_o bondage_n now_o i_o ask_v what_o our_o adversary_n can_v find_v fault_n with_o in_o this_o our_o do_v either_o in_o the_o matter_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o proceed_n if_o they_o look_v upon_o the_o matter_n we_o separant_fw-la ourselves_o not_o for_o light_a matter_n but_o for_o manifest_a idolatry_n for_o make_v void_a the_o cross_n of_o christ_n for_o perdition_n which_o reign_v in_o the_o place_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v short_a we_o withdraw_v ourselves_o from_o this_o prince_n of_o confusion_n who_o be_v revolt_v back_o against_o our_o lord_n and_o we_o report_v we_o even_o to_o their_o own_o judgement_n whether_o they_o think_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o every_o one_o wink_v thereat_o who_o shall_v discover_v he_o and_o if_o every_o one_o cleave_v unto_o he_o who_o shall_v chase_v he_o away_o and_o if_o all_o the_o world_n hold_v their_o peace_n where_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o shall_v destroy_v he_o now_o if_o they_o shall_v deny_v that_o he_o be_v antichrist_n we_o will_v submit_v ourselves_o to_o prove_v it_o &_o then_o there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o our_o separation_n but_o of_o our_o doctrine_n if_o they_o will_v reprove_v we_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o proceed_n therein_o condemn_v we_o they_o condemn_v the_o apostle_n who_o have_v overrun_v all_o israel_n run_v into_o a_o thousand_o danger_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v make_v christ_n to_o be_v receive_v into_o his_o own_o house_n &_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o temple_n &_o final_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v stop_v every_o way_n by_o open_a force_n by_o excommunication_n imprisonment_n etc_n etc_n they_o receive_v he_o secret_o into_o their_o private_a house_n and_o do_v preach_v he_o in_o small_a assembly_n till_o at_o last_o they_o bring_v all_o the_o world_n into_o his_o subjection_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o we_o have_v break_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o have_v set_v altar_n against_o altar_n that_o we_o be_v schismatic_n etc_n etc_n which_o be_v the_o outcry_n of_o the_o pharisee_n against_o the_o apostle_n you_o violate_v the_o temple_n the_o altar_n the_o law_n etc_n etc_n and_o hereupon_o king_n and_o nation_n have_v arm_v themselves_o on_o all_o side_n against_o we_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o must_v present_o make_v answer_n unto_o church_n first_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o a_o local_a union_n neither_o the_o separation_n in_o remove_v of_o place_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o without_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o place_n who_o yet_o be_v within_o according_a to_o charity_n and_o many_o again_o in_o place_n that_o yet_o if_o we_o consider_v faith_n be_v without_o but_o the_o true_a christian_a communion_n consist_v in_o the_o union_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o union_n of_o charity_n which_o s._n augustine_n call_v the_o nearness_n or_o rather_o the_o neyghbourhoode_n and_o dwell_n together_o as_o i_o may_v say_v of_o heart_n and_o agreement_n in_o doctrine_n and_o the_o true_a separation_n in_o the_o diversity_n or_o contrarietis_fw-la of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n now_o concern_v the_o union_n of_o faith_n it_o consist_v in_o that_o heavenly_a doctrine_n which_o be_v comprehend_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n tend_v only_o to_o this_o point_n to_o make_v we_o feel_v our_o sin_n and_o to_o show_v we_o a_o remedy_n therefore_o in_o one_o only_a jesus_n christ_n crucify_v and_o this_o be_v that_o for_o which_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a servant_n of_o god_n we_o suffer_v and_o be_v kill_v and_o for_o withdraw_a ourselves_o from_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o antichrist_n that_o shameful_o tread_v it_o under_o his_o foot_n we_o be_v persecute_v excommunicate_v and_o murder_v we_o be_v therefore_o unite_v in_o the_o faith_n with_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n martyr_n ancient_a doctor_n and_o general_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v before_o the_o law_n under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o grace_n yea_o and_o under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n if_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o we_o will_v submit_v ourselves_o to_o prove_v it_o there_o be_v not_o therefore_o any_o more_o question_n to_o cavil_n at_o our_o separation_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o as_o a_o escape_n to_o the_o end_n to_o resort_v to_o true_a doctrine_n and_o if_o they_o confess_v it_o deny_v we_o to_o be_v unite_v with_o they_o they_o confess_v then_o that_o they_o be_v not_o unite_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o we_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o papacy_n concern_v the_o communion_n of_o charity_n or_o love_n which_o consist_v in_o suffering_n and_o bear_v the_o evil_n one_o of_o another_o &_o in_o not_o light_o condemn_v one_o another_o we_o hold_v all_o they_o for_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n which_o worship_n one_o god_n in_o spirit_n &_o in_o truth_n and_o hope_v for_o their_o salvation_n in_o one_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o crucify_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o man_n we_o desire_v all_o union_n and_o agreement_n with_o they_o in_o whatsoever_o country_n and_o region_n they_o be_v and_o whatsoever_o corruption_n may_v be_v yet_o remain_v among_o they_o not_o only_o in_o manner_n but_o also_o in_o certain_a point_n of_o doctrine_n bewail_v the_o bodily_a servitude_n which_o they_o endure_v and_o pray_v the_o father_n of_o light_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o enlighten_v they_o more_o &_o more_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n contrary_a wise_a every_o man_n know_v that_o the_o pope_n consistory_n have_v excommunicate_v all_o the_o east_n church_n 600_o year_n ago_o only_o for_o this_o that_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v a_o article_n that_o concern_v only_o but_o his_o ambition_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v leave_v they_o to_o be_v invade_v of_o the_o turk_n in_o despite_n whereof_o they_o have_v rather_o endure_v all_o extremity_n then_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o concern_v the_o union_n of_o charity_n amongst_o they_o which_o yet_o cleave_v to_o the_o pope_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o dear_a unto_o they_o than_o their_o own_o life_n &_o we_o have_v be_v put_v to_o the_o fire_n water_n &_o sword_n for_o open_v the_o truth_n unto_o they_o &_o pray_v god_n every_o day_n that_o he_o will_v enlighten_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o romish_a consistory_n do_v pursue_v we_o by_o all_o mean_n to_o death_n and_o that_o by_o the_o space_n of_o these_o three_o score_n year_n and_o more_o and_o so_o many_o people_n continual_o groan_v for_o a_o free_a general_a council_n they_o have_v not_o have_v only_o so_o much_o charity_n as_o to_o grant_v we_o either_o general_a or_o national_a to_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o error_n they_o pretend_v we_o to_o be_v in_o answer_v for_o all_o &_o that_o to_o so_o many_o prince_n who_o have_v judge_v it_o necessary_a that_o these_o matter_n be_v already_o decide_v and_o ought_v not_o any_o more_o to_o come_v in_o question_n this_o be_v every_o way_n a_o frivolous_a answer_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o but_o i_o demand_v what_o parliament_n be_v it_o yea_o even_o amongst_o the_o heathen_a so_o barbarous_a and_o so_o far_o from_o humanity_n
we_o will_v ask_v no_o better_o to_o remain_v still_o with_o they_o they_o will_v yet_o further_o reproach_n we_o that_o christ_n haunt_v the_o temple_n notwithstanding_o the_o merchandise_n that_o be_v there_o commit_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o merchandise_n that_o be_v there_o and_o the_o idolatry_n that_o at_o this_o day_n have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o again_o let_v they_o suffer_v we_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o whip_v out_o the_o merchant_n of_o the_o whore_n that_o buy_v and_o sell_v man_n soul_n by_o their_o simony_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o be_v all_o ready_a to_o frequent_v it_o to_o conclude_v they_o cast_v we_o in_o the_o tooth_n that_o jereinie_n preach_v in_o topheth_n where_o abominable_a idolatry_n be_v commit_v 19_o they_o ought_v also_o to_o add_v that_o which_o the_o text_n say_v express_o that_o he_o preach_v there_o against_o idolatry_n also_o that_o amos_n the_o prophet_n prophesy_v in_o bethel_n in_o amasias_n his_o chapel_n 5._o they_o shall_v add_v they_o that_o this_o be_v to_o signify_v unto_o he_o the_o horrible_a vengeance_n that_o god_n have_v prepare_v to_o fall_v upon_o his_o head_n also_o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n prophesy_v well_o in_o bethel_n 13._o in_o jeroboams_n time_n but_o they_o shall_v also_o add_v that_o this_o be_v to_o signify_v unto_o he_o that_o his_o priest_n shall_v one_o day_n be_v sacrifice_v upon_o the_o same_o altar_n but_o we_o will_v yet_o say_v more_o unto_o they_o let_v they_o but_o suffer_v we_o to_o preach_v in_o their_o church_n amongst_o their_o idol_n we_o will_v make_v they_o to_o fall_v down_o at_o the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n without_o ever_o touch_v or_o lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o let_v they_o but_o suffer_v we_o to_o place_v the_o ark_n of_o god_n and_o his_o holy_a covenant_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o temple_n 5._o and_o they_o shall_v within_o a_o short_a space_n find_v all_o their_o dagon_n in_o piece_n we_o refuse_v not_o then_o to_o go_v to_o preach_v there_o for_o this_o be_v it_o we_o desire_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n to_o make_v the_o truth_n know_v unto_o every_o one_o but_o we_o can_v not_o come_v there_o and_o hold_v our_o peace_n for_o accurse_a be_v he_o which_o hear_v his_o god_n blaspheme_v without_o protest_v against_o it_o and_o see_v his_o brother_n deceive_v and_o do_v not_o direct_v he_o but_o we_o after_o the_o example_n of_o jeremy_n of_o amos_n and_o of_o the_o man_n of_o god_n will_v protest_v before_o king_n before_o people_n yea_o in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o their_o abomi_n nation_n &_o we_o have_v do_v it_o &_o have_v seal_v our_o protestation_n with_o our_o own_o blood_n but_o we_o will_v not_o sacrifice_v after_o their_o example_n upon_o the_o alter_z that_o king_n achas_n cause_v to_o be_v make_v after_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o damascus_n although_o that_o urias_n the_o high_a priest_n wink_n at_o it_o much_o less_o will_v we_o worship_v in_o dan_n &_o bethel_n for_o they_o never_o do_v it_o we_o will_v not_o i_o say_v communicate_v in_o any_o wise_a with_o the_o sacrilege_n &_o impiety_n bring_v in_o by_o antichrist_n for_o this_o be_v great_a wickedness_n to_o do_v it_o &_o treason_n against_o god_n to_o conceal_v it_o &_o more_o than_o senseless_a blockishness_n to_o all_o not_o to_o search_v it_o out_o &_o inexcusable_a blindness_n in_o the_o light_v which_o at_o this_o day_n shine_v every_o where_o to_o communicate_v with_o these_o work_n of_o darkness_n rome_n moreover_o they_o object_n unto_o we_o if_o you_o hold_v the_o pope_n for_o antich_n &_o our_o service_n for_o idolatry_n how_o they_o do_v you_o receive_v our_o baptism_n or_o if_o you_o hold_v that_o for_o good_a how_o be_v it_o that_o you_o communicate_v not_o with_o our_o church_n first_o god_n have_v have_v such_o pity_n of_o his_o church_n that_o he_o have_v suffer_v antichr_n to_o change_v nothing_o in_o the_o bapt_z of_o christ_n in_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o although_o he_o have_v bewrap_v it_o with_o many_o superstition_n altogether_o like_a as_o he_o suffer_v not_o circumcision_n which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o covenant_n to_o be_v quite_o abolish_v neither_o among_o the_o samaritans_n nor_o in_o juda_n whatsoever_o idolatry_n be_v there_o commit_v we_o say_v then_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n through_o baptism_n bring_v forth_o child_n to_o god_n but_o that_o through_o her_o idolatry_n she_o nourish_v they_o up_o to_o the_o devil_n altogether_o like_a as_o ezech._n say_v 16._o that_o jerusalem_fw-la &_o samaria_n engender_v child_n to_o god_n as_o a_o adulterous_a woman_n do_v to_o her_o husband_n until_o she_o be_v divorce_v but_o afterward_o she_o sacrifice_v they_o to_o moloch_n that_o be_v to_o false_a god_n donatistas_n second_o we_o say_v with_o s._n aug._n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o heretic_n that_o baptize_v as_o long_o as_o baptism_n remain_v sound_a but_o christ_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o heretic_n wherein_o we_o follow_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n &_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o 1._o council_n of_o nice_a nicenum_n that_o they_o which_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n renounce_v their_o heresy_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v rebaptise_v except_o those_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o the_o samosatens_n who_o keep_v not_o the_o essential_a word_n of_o baptism_n who_o to_o speak_v proper_o they_o do_v not_o rebaptize_v because_o with_o out_o these_o they_o can_v never_o be_v baptize_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n or_o of_o his_o idol_n three_o baptism_n in_o our_o infancy_n bring_v we_o into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v receive_v into_o his_o family_n if_o we_o serve_v he_o not_o according_a to_o his_o commandment_n for_o than_o we_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o the_o benefit_n receive_v by_o baptism_n the_o which_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v be_v turn_v into_o our_o great_a condemnation_n this_o therefore_o be_v unto_o we_o as_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o a_o common_a weal_n which_o bind_v we_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o good_a citizen_n &_o of_o simple_a &_o plain_a enemy_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v we_o become_v traitor_n and_o parricide_n if_o we_o serve_v a_o tyrant_n which_o have_v invade_v it_o kinsfolk_n and_o if_o we_o bear_v arm_n against_o the_o law_n thereof_o for_o albeit_o we_o be_v bear_v under_o tyranny_n yet_o we_o be_v bear_v for_o the_o common_a weal_n and_o enrol_a in_o the_o register_n of_o citizen_n &_o not_o within_o the_o list_n of_o the_o tyrant_n slave_n yea_o even_o though_o the_o tyrant_n or_o his_o officer_n keep_v the_o register_n now_o to_o the_o citizen_n which_o be_v bear_v under_o tyranny_n who_o have_v serve_v a_o tyrant_n &_o who_o afterwards_o acknowledge_v his_o fault_n withdraw_v himself_o to_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o common_a liberty_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o new_a letter_n of_o his_o natural_a birth_n although_o by_o his_o former_a deed_n he_o make_v himself_o unworthy_a so_o likewise_o we_o say_v that_o to_o he_o which_o be_v bind_v under_o the_o popedom_n who_o have_v maintain_v antichrist_n and_o join_v himself_o to_o his_o faction_n and_o to_o every_o other_o heretic_n which_o have_v fight_v against_o christ_n there_o need_v no_o second_o baptism_n when_o he_o return_v to_o his_o duty_n for_o albeit_o he_o have_v renounce_v christ_n yet_o christ_n have_v not_o renounce_v the_o right_n he_o have_v over_o he_o and_o his_o baptism_n be_v so_o little_o deface_v that_o of_o a_o simple_a enemy_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v without_o baptism_n he_o be_v become_v a_o traitor_n and_o guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n against_o his_o majesty_n and_o therefore_o there_o need_v nothing_o but_o a_o utter_a abolishment_n of_o his_o fault_n and_o not_o a_o renew_v of_o his_o baptism_n four_o yea_o but_o there_o be_v no_o baptism_n but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o when_o you_o separate_v yourselves_o from_o we_o you_o then_o separate_v yourselves_o from_o the_o church_n the_o answer_n there_o be_v no_o baptism_n but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o we_o deny_v not_o also_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o church_n for_o in_o that_o we_o affirm_v that_o antichrist_n rule_v there_o we_o consequent_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n inasmuch_o as_o he_o can_v not_o sit_v any_o where_o but_o in_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n defile_v by_o antichrist_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v again_o we_o depart_v not_o
from_o the_o temple_n but_o from_o the_o idolatry_n commit_v in_o the_o temple_n nor_o from_o the_o common_a weal_n but_o from_o the_o tyranny_n which_o oppress_v the_o common_a wealth_n nor_o from_o the_o city_n but_o from_o the_o pestilence_n which_o infect_v the_o city_n nor_o from_o the_o communion_n &_o fellowship_n of_o the_o people_n to_o who_o we_o wish_v all_o happiness_n &_o salvation_n but_o from_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o antichrist_n &_o of_o his_o maintainer_n we_o therefore_o renounce_v not_o their_o baptism_n but_o we_o ratify_v it_o by_o the_o same_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o serve_v god_n &_o to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n &_o follow_v the_o same_o we_o seek_v to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o his_o word_n &_o renounce_v all_o idol_n by_o these_o letter_n of_o natural_a birth_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o maintain_v the_o law_n of_o the_o ancient_n christian_n common_a wealth_n which_o be_v the_o church_n &_o follow_v they_o we_o set_v up_o again_o before_o we_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o only_a lawgiver_n of_o the_o church_n &_o will_v deliver_v the_o church_n from_o all_o new_a imposition_n &_o burden_n which_o antichrist_n have_v lay_v upon_o their_o conscience_n by_o baptism_n we_o have_v make_v a_o oath_n unto_o christ_n &_o the_o pope_n will_v turn_v our_o service_n from_o christ_n to_o his_o idol_n &_o to_o himself_o we_o therefore_o set_v christ_n against_o antichrist_n and_o the_o church_n against_o his_o conspiracy_n and_o this_o be_v that_o for_o which_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v be_v baptize_v into_o the_o church_n how_o tyrannical_a and_o disorder_a soever_o it_o have_v be_v but_o the_o minister_v thereof_o who_o you_o preten_v to_o be_v of_o antichr_n they_o have_v baptize_v you_o in_o deed_n they_o have_v put_v water_n on_o my_o head_n but_o christ_n have_v baptize_v i_o the_o tyrant_n or_o his_o officer_n which_o he_o have_v establish_v after_o his_o fashion_n have_v make_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o hand_n &_o give_v he_o a_o oath_n but_o they_o have_v make_v i_o to_o make_v it_o to_o the_o common_a wealth_n &_o not_o to_o the_o tyrant_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n &_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n the_o form_n of_o the_o oath_n have_v remain_v entire_a &_o sound_a albeit_o the_o estate_n be_v change_v to_o follow_v therefore_o the_o tenor_n of_o my_o oath_n i_o will_v retire_v myself_o into_o the_o army_n of_o true_a citizen_n &_o i_o will_v seek_v out_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o place_n whereunto_o it_o have_v withdraw_v itself_o &_o i_o will_v renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o antichrist_n who_o under_o colour_n of_o my_o oath_n make_v i_o to_o break_v my_o oath_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n 14._o it_o be_v say_v unto_o we_o preach_v the_o truth_n we_o have_v do_v it_o but_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v we_o it_o be_v say_v consequent_o unto_o we_o fly_v from_o idol_n and_o depart_v out_o of_o babylon_n we_o have_v do_v it_o but_o yet_o then_o when_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o man_n against_o the_o truth_n have_v compel_v we_o final_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v shut_v out_o of_o church_n by_o the_o magistrate_n we_o have_v gather_v together_o the_o faithful_a into_o house_n and_o have_v build_v the_o true_a jerusalem_n at_o destroy_v pella_n if_o man_n mark_v this_o deed_n in_o itself_o they_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o it_o for_o we_o stand_v ground_v upon_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n now_o if_o any_o man_n further_o say_v howsoever_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v that_o yet_o it_o belong_v not_o unto_o our_o minister_n to_o do_v it_o there_o be_v no_o far_a question_n but_o of_o their_o vocation_n and_o calling_n which_o shall_v be_v handle_v in_o the_o chapter_n next_o follow_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v a_o lawful_a calling_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n chap_n xi_o forasmuch_o as_o our_o adversary_n can_v neither_o deny_v the_o corruption_n which_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n with_o other_o thing_n depend_v thereof_o from_o the_o which_o we_o go_v about_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o set_v it_o free_a to_o the_o end_n to_o hold_v we_o from_o enter_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o matter_n &_o from_o rip_v it_o up_o again_o they_o at_o length_n use_v this_o pretty_a shift_n &_o ask_v we_o whatcal_v our_o minister_n have_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n &_o to_o preach_v in_o it_o 12.24_o this_o be_v even_o the_o same_o that_o zidkiiah_n the_o false_a prophet_n say_v unto_o micheas_n what_o way_n go_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o i_o to_o speak_v to_o thou_o and_o the_o pharisee_n to_o jesus_n christ_n thou_o be_v a_o carpenter_n son_n &_o who_o have_v send_v thou_o to_o who_o we_o may_v answer_v in_o one_o word_n with_o jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n which_o we_o preach_v bear_v witness_n of_o us._n they_o likewise_o cast_v in_o our_o tooth_n their_o long_a succession_n that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n s._n peter_n heir_n &c._a &c._a to_o who_o jesus_n christ_n have_v answer_v for_o we_o you_o be_v abraham_n seed_n 2._o but_o the_o devil_n be_v your_o father_n from_o who_o you_o be_v come_v &_o s_o paul_n brethren_n be_v not_o deceive_v for_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v &_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god._n but_o forasmuch_o as_o heretofore_o they_o have_v make_v whole_a book_n upon_o this_o point_n it_o be_v needful_a to_o handle_v this_o more_o large_o when_o fire_n shall_v take_v hold_n of_o any_o city_n or_o town_n or_o a_o enemy_n shall_v scale_v it_o in_o the_o night_n if_o the_o least_o burgess_n shall_v give_v a_o alarm_n yea_o admit_v it_o be_v but_o a_o stranger_n while_o the_o watchman_n sleep_v no_o man_n will_v demand_v by_o what_o title_n he_o do_v it_o and_o much_o less_o punish_v he_o for_o it_o but_o rather_o man_n will_v run_v to_o the_o water_n and_o to_o the_o wall_n they_o will_v see_v where_o it_o be_v and_o every_o one_o accept_v he_o thankful_o that_o warn_v they_o when_o contrariwise_o we_o discover_v antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o church_n who_o we_o have_v submit_v ourselves_o to_o convince_v before_o the_o face_n of_o a_o council_n and_o in_o his_o own_o presence_n in_o stead_n of_o hear_v we_o of_o examine_v our_o reason_n of_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n where_o he_o be_v lively_o paint_v out_o they_o fall_v to_o examine_v we_o of_o our_o condition_n and_o by_o what_o authority_n we_o advertise_v they_o yea_o they_o put_v we_o to_o a_o worse_a death_n then_o if_o we_o have_v betray_v the_o common_a wealth_n if_o the_o governor_n of_o some_o place_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a when_o man_n give_v they_o advertisement_n what_o place_n shall_v not_o soon_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o what_o prince_n be_v there_o that_o will_v not_o hold_v they_o for_o traitor_n and_o judge_v that_o they_o have_v conspire_v with_o his_o enemy_n there_o be_v no_o question_n here_o of_o our_o condition_n &_o quality_n but_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o antichrist_n &_o of_o his_o doctrine_n it_o stand_v with_o the_o duty_n of_o those_o that_o warn_v we_o and_o it_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o of_o ourselves_o if_o the_o advertisement_n and_o warning_n be_v true_a it_o be_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v false_a it_o be_v we_o the_o question_n be_v then_o to_o examine_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o warning_n and_o not_o the_o quality_n and_o condition_n of_o those_o that_o warn_v we_o in_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o catiline_n the_o senate_n lend_v their_o ear_n to_o a_o base_a woman_n against_o the_o great_a and_o when_o the_o gaul_n will_v by_o night_n have_v invade_v the_o capitole_n of_o rome_n the_o watchman_n speak_v not_o a_o word_n and_o the_o dog_n be_v dumb_a there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o goose_n that_o cry_v and_o yet_o every_o man_n run_v thither_o and_o make_v account_n thereof_o and_o have_v not_o this_o gagle_a be_v this_o notable_a city_n which_o afterwards_o conquer_v the_o whole_a world_n have_v be_v lose_v when_o therefore_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o most_o vile_a &_o contemptiple_a of_o the_o church_n we_o deserve_v to_o be_v hear_v yea_o see_v we_o desire_v not_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o ear_n as_o slanderer_n but_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o himself_o that_o have_v accuse_v we_o not_o from_o ourselves_o but_o from_o god_n concern_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o scatter_v which_o the_o pope_n &_o his_o have_v make_v in_o it_o we_o know_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o lawful_a call_n but_o we_o maintain_v ourselves_o to_o be_v therein_o better_o warrant_v and_o ground_v than_o
they_o who_o have_v nothing_o but_o their_o boast_n and_o vaunt_v although_o they_o have_v the_o great_a title_n &_o honour_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n time_n if_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n ask_v we_o what_o be_v the_o call_n of_o our_o first_o minister_n which_o reform_v the_o church_n in_o these_o last_o time_n we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o vocation_n and_o succession_n whereof_o they_o themselves_o do_v brag_v but_o the_o same_o vocation_n which_o they_o abuse_v our_o man_n have_v endeavour_v to_o use_v will_n and_o to_o that_o vain_a succession_n wherewith_o they_o deck_v themselves_o they_o have_v add_v the_o succession_n of_o true_a doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v corrupt_v without_o which_o all_o succession_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o continue_n of_o abuse_n and_o error_n wickleife_n john_n hus_n luther_n zwinglius_fw-la decolompadius_n bucer_n and_o other_o of_o that_o school_n from_o whence_o the_o minister_n which_o have_v gather_v church_n from_o under_o antichrist_n be_v descend_v be_v priest_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n as_o priest_n &_o pastor_n they_o have_v charge_n to_o preach_v the_o truth_n unto_o the_o people_n &_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o doctor_n they_o be_v call_v to_o expound_v divinity_n in_o their_o read_n &_o in_o their_o book_n and_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o ordinary_a oath_n of_o all_o university_n to_o declare_v the_o truth_n unto_o the_o church_n to_o confute_v all_o doctrine_n repugnant_a against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o then_o may_v to_o expel_v it_o now_o in_o their_o time_n they_o find_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v hide_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o be_v turn_v to_o man_n &_o to_o image_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v tread_v under_o foot_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v partly_o turn_v into_o idolatry_n &_o partly_o deny_v to_o the_o poor_a people_n to_o be_v short_a that_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v profane_v &_o poison_v with_o the_o pope_n gloss_n &_o popish_a interpretation_n and_o when_o they_o show_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o bishops_z and_o metropolitans_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o their_o church_n they_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o they_o they_o be_v the_o first_o that_o persecute_v they_o because_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o infect_a part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o ask_v therefore_o if_o their_o vocation_n command_v they_o not_o to_o go_v far_o to_o wit_n to_o preach_v the_o truth_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o pure_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o if_o they_o have_v do_v otherwise_o whether_o they_o have_v not_o be_v forsaker_n of_o their_o call_n contenmer_n of_o their_o oath_n make_v unto_o god_n and_o abuser_n of_o the_o people_n both_o two_o therefore_o say_v i_o both_o our_o adversary_n and_o our_o first_o minister_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o ordinary_a &_o outward_a call_n but_o herein_o be_v the_o difference_n that_o that_o which_o we_o have_v follow_v the_o other_o have_v forsake_v that_o which_o we_o have_v do_v of_o duty_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o charge_n the_o other_o have_v conceal_v we_o have_v lead_v their_o sheep_n upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o israel_n into_o good_a pasture_n 34._o the_o other_o have_v devour_v they_o or_o else_o leave_v they_o for_o a_o pray_v to_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n or_o else_o drive_v they_o to_o the_o fen_n and_o marsh_n where_o they_o have_v starve_v a_o magistrate_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o government_n of_o a_o common_a wealth_n where_o he_o shall_v find_v the_o good_a law_n corrupt_v by_o the_o negligence_n or_o malice_n of_o those_o that_o go_v before_o his_o court_n full_a of_o injustice_n the_o office_n subject_a to_o faction_n bribery_n and_o corruption_n and_o he_o will_v reform_v all_o this_o and_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o law_n he_o that_o will_v further_o now_o ask_v he_o by_o what_o right_a he_o do_v this_o shall_v he_o not_o make_v himself_o a_o laugh_a stock_n because_o he_o follow_v step_n by_o step_n his_o call_n he_o have_v not_o swear_v to_o maintain_v abuse_n but_o rather_o to_o maintain_v the_o law_n and_o to_o provide_v every_o way_n that_o he_o can_v for_o the_o good_a and_o preservation_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n now_o contrariwise_o if_o he_o wink_v at_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a he_o shall_v do_v direct_o contrary_a to_o his_o call_n even_o so_o likewise_o have_v our_o first_o minister_n do_v first_o require_v reformation_n and_o afterward_o put_v to_o their_o hand_n according_a to_o their_o duty_n and_o if_o we_o can_v ask_v of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v their_o true_a successor_n they_o will_v not_o tell_v we_o such_o as_o have_v a_o triple_a crown_n or_o such_o a_o cope_n or_o such_o a_o mitre_n but_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n after_o our_o example_n for_o so_o have_v they_o learn_v of_o the_o true_a master_n 1._o that_o he_o which_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n his_o father_n be_v his_o mother_n his_o sister_n and_o his_o brother_n at_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o first_o man_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v awaken_v in_o england_n in_o bohemia_n in_o germany_n in_o scotland_n in_o denmark_n in_o swedenland_n and_o afterwards_o many_o in_o france_n in_o spain_n and_o in_o italy_n itself_o and_o these_o be_v send_v to_o bethink_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n consequent_o some_o whole_a realm_n be_v reform_v the_o bishop_n themselves_o that_o there_o have_v preach_v lie_n preach_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o self_n same_o church_n &_o pulpit_n of_o these_o for_o the_o most_o part_n if_o our_o adversary_n will_v demand_v succession_n it_o be_v on_o their_o side_n for_o they_o have_v succeed_v from_o bishop_n to_o bishop_n from_o the_o first_o which_o preach_v there_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o ask_v a_o vocation_n why_o it_o be_v even_o their_o own_o for_o they_o be_v call_v to_o be_v bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o they_o have_v perform_v the_o office_n which_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o difference_n therefore_o as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v in_o this_o only_a point_n that_o they_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o peascod_n shale_n and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o pasture_n of_o life_n they_o defile_v their_o flock_n with_o the_o filthiness_n of_o antichrist_n and_o these_o wash_v they_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n behold_v then_o concern_v the_o call_n of_o our_o first_o minister_n which_o have_v whatsoever_o may_v be_v good_a in_o the_o pretend_a calling_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o this_o point_n further_o that_o our_o man_n lawful_o exercise_v it_o and_o the_o other_o do_v but_o withhold_v it_o in_o unrighteousness_n and_o although_o some_o of_o our_o man_n as_o in_o so_o corrupt_a a_o state_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v see_v it_o in_o our_o time_n without_o wait_v for_o their_o call_n or_o allowance_n of_o they_o that_o under_o the_o title_n of_o pastor_n oppress_v the_o lord_n flock_v be_v call_v by_o those_o church_n to_o which_o they_o vow_v their_o ministry_n yet_o this_o ought_v not_o more_o to_o be_v think_v strange_a then_o in_o a_o free_a common_a wealth_n where_o the_o people_n without_o wait_v either_o for_o the_o consent_n or_o voice_n of_o those_o that_o play_n the_o tyrant_n shall_v have_v choose_v according_a to_o the_o law_n good_a and_o lawful_a magistrate_n afterward_o concern_v the_o vocation_n of_o minister_n which_o be_v send_v by_o the_o former_a and_o since_o by_o we_o we_o have_v herein_o observe_v the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n if_o the_o question_n be_v of_o their_o person_n we_o have_v lawful_o examine_v both_o their_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n and_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o saint_n paul_n 3.2_o that_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v and_o blameless_a if_o of_o the_o person_n which_o make_v this_o examination_n why_o it_o be_v not_o one_o man_n alone_o but_o many_o minister_n bishop_n and_o elder_n due_o call_v before_o to_o this_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 1.9_o the_o presbytery_n or_o eldership_n as_o saint_n paul_n call_v it_o or_o as_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v it_o 1._o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n during_o this_o examination_n whereupon_o depend_v the_o election_n the_o church_n continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o fast_v as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ordain_v of_o elder_n in_o the_o acts._n be_v find_v meet_a 14.23_o they_o be_v publish_v to_o the_o people_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o any_o man_n have_v aught_o to_o say_v against_o their_o election_n he_o may_v repair_v before_o the_o assembly_n as_o we_o read_v be_v practise_v
in_o the_o old_a church_n alexandro_n even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o paynim_n final_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o people_n they_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o they_o they_o give_v they_o authority_n to_o preach_v which_o be_v the_o only_a ceremony_n that_o the_o apostle_n use_v by_o imitation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n 19.6_o after_o which_o they_o begin_v to_o administer_v the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n this_o be_v that_o the_o ancient_a canon_n say_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n 8._o &_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v choose_v without_o a_o number_n of_o bishop_n etc_n etc_n at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o elder_n &_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n again_o 90._o that_o they_o which_o be_v come_v to_o a_o bishopric_n by_o money_n or_o favour_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v hold_v for_o bishop_n neither_o have_v any_o right_a to_o ordain_v other_o now_o we_o report_v ourselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o who_o be_v more_o canonical_o elect_v they_o or_o we_o &_o whether_o these_o canon_n have_v not_o be_v altogether_o contemn_v amongst_o they_o for_o the_o space_n of_o more_o than_o these_o 800._o year_n if_o the_o question_n be_v of_o bishop_n either_o ordain_v or_o ordain_v they_o come_v to_o their_o bishopric_n either_o through_o favour_n of_o the_o prince_n court_n or_o else_o by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o by_o pay_v of_o money_n and_o there_o be_v who_o be_v make_v bishop_n for_o the_o service_n of_o their_o predecessor_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v at_o that_o time_n when_o it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o they_o shall_v be_v male_a or_o female_a man_n or_o woman_n the_o thing_n itself_o speak_v &_o every_o man_n see_v it_o &_o know_v it_o before_o i_o can_v speak_v of_o it_o if_o of_o the_o examination_n which_o be_v make_v by_o this_o a_o man_n may_v judge_v what_o it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v when_o he_o see_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o know_v not_o whether_o their_o mass_n be_v in_o greek_a or_o latin_a &_o their_o life_n be_v so_o know_v i_o touch_v not_o those_o few_o that_o behave_v themselves_o better_a that_o their_o cardinal_n 110._o choose_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o thyrd_o for_o a_o reformation_n confess_v in_o their_o article_n that_o for_o their_o wicked_a life_n and_o horrible_a outrage_n the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v throughout_o all_o nation_n if_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n which_o s._n cyprian_n so_o much_o require_v &_o which_o we_o see_v so_o well_o put_v in_o practice_n in_o the_o person_n of_o eradius_fw-la that_o be_v s._n augustine_n successor_n they_o present_v their_o bishop_n to_o the_o people_n not_o to_o have_v their_o consent_n to_o approve_v they_o but_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o worship_v they_o for_o fashion_n sake_n only_o and_o not_o altogether_o in_o good_a earnest_n now_o if_o we_o come_v to_o the_o simple_a priest_n 9_o the_o ignorant_a bishop_n do_v yet_o make_v they_o of_o the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o of_o the_o most_o vicious_a worse_o than_o themselves_o so_o that_o the_o time_n whereof_o the_o prophet_n complain_v have_v endure_v a_o long_a time_n in_o the_o church_n that_o whosoever_o will_v may_v consecrate_v his_o hand_n we_o minister_v therefore_o at_o this_o day_n have_v the_o same_o succession_n that_o their_o bishop_n have_v for_o from_o the_o first_o that_o reform_v the_o church_n no_o man_n can_v take_v it_o away_o &_o unto_o this_o they_o have_v further_o add_v the_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o their_o vocation_n be_v far_o better_a and_o more_o canonical_a for_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o those_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v ordain_v they_o be_v ordain_v according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a canon_n which_o antichrist_n and_o his_o maintainer_n have_v utter_o disannul_v whereas_o examine_v the_o election_n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n you_o shall_v have_v much_o a_o do_v to_o find_v one_o that_o may_v right_o be_v call_v a_o bishop_n against_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v nothing_o can_v be_v allege_v unless_o it_o be_v that_o these_o first_o reformer_n of_o the_o church_n john_n hus_n luther_n zwinglius_fw-la decolompadius_n &_o other_o from_o who_o we_o be_v descend_v they_o be_v not_o bishop_n but_o only_a priest_n &_o doctor_n to_o this_o we_o answer_v one_o that_o a_o minister_n &_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n at_o this_o day_n in_o their_o title_n and_o mitre_n yet_o that_o in_o their_o essential_a dignity_n they_o differ_v not_o a_o whit_n s._n paul_n say_v to_o titus_n i_o leave_v thou_o in_o candie_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o shall_v ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n and_o afterward_o 1._o willing_a to_o show_v he_o how_o he_o shall_v govern_v there_o he_o add_v for_o it_o behove_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v faultless_a etc_n etc_n also_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o act_n 28._o that_o he_o send_v to_o seek_v the_o elder_n or_o senior_n of_o ephesus_n but_o mark_v the_o weighty_a exhortation_n he_o make_v to_o they_o take_v heed_n say_v he_o to_o yourselves_o &_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n philippian_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n he_o salute_v the_o deacon_n and_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o ancient_n s._n peter_n also_o exhort_v the_o bishop_n or_o elder_n 4._o feed_v say_v he_o the_o flock_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o have_v a_o eye_n over_o they_o as_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n etc_n etc_n and_o in_o deed_n where_o saint_n paul_n reckon_v up_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o degree_n in_o the_o church_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o bishop_n but_o only_o of_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n &_o to_o the_o elder_n it_o be_v say_v feed_v teach_v &_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v then_o most_o apparent_a that_o elder_n who_o you_o call_v priest_n &_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o 24._o and_o ireneus_fw-la also_o call_v anicetus_n pius_n &_o hyginus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o name_n elder_n this_o be_v that_o s._n hierom_n say_v in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n handle_v this_o matter_n among_o our_o ancient_n bishop_n &_o elder_n be_v both_o one_o but_o the_o one_o be_v the_o name_n of_o age_n the_o other_o of_o office_n or_o dignity_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v plain_o show_v us._n euandrum_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n before_o one_o say_v i_o hold_v of_o cephas_n &_o i_o of_o apollo_n etc_n etc_n all_o thing_n be_v govern_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o common_a advice_n of_o the_o senior_n or_o elder_n afterward_n to_o avoid_v schism_n advice_n be_v give_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v choose_v above_o other_o fusissime_fw-la but_o as_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o elder_n be_v subject_a unto_o he_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o must_v know_v in_o that_o that_o he_o be_v above_o the_o elder_n it_o be_v by_o custom_n and_o not_o by_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n ephesisios_n s._n ambrose_n expound_v the_o 4._o of_o the_o ephe._n where_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o church_n be_v large_o handle_v the_o bishop_n say_v he_o be_v call_v at_o the_o first_o elder_n whereupon_o one_o succeed_v another_o etc_n etc_n and_o upon_o timoth._n a_o bishop_n be_v none_o other_o but_o a_o chief_a elder_n timoth._n s._n gregory_n in_o his_o epistle_n call_v the_o bishop_n elder_n &_o cardinal_n etc_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o chief_a and_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n in_o his_o deconomical_a law_n call_v they_o reverend_n because_o they_o differ_v nothing_o from_o elder_n in_o their_o essential_a dignity_n but_o only_o in_o this_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o first_o place_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o god_n service_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o order_n and_o ceremony_n gratian_n in_o his_o decretal_n say_v plain_o olim_fw-la that_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o distribution_n of_o his_o diocese_n be_v from_o man_n law_n &_o not_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n lombarde_n repeat_v it_o in_o the_o same_o word_n and_o m._n john_n of_o paris_n papali_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o sorbonist_n of_o the_o order_n of_o jacobin_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o kingly_a &_o papal_a power_n which_o the_o whole_a faculty_n of_o divinity_n approve_v at_o that_o time_n go_v further_a for_o concern_v the_o essential_a
divinity_n in_o one_o tomb_n notwithstanding_o after_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v cast_v out_o his_o fire_n against_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o he_o have_v raise_v against_o they_o infinite_a persecution_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o the_o end_n that_o he_o yield_v himself_o &_o that_o all_o the_o earth_n acknowledge_v their_o lord_n let_v the_o earth_n therefore_o do_v what_o it_o will_v the_o word_n of_o god_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o it_o must_v be_v that_o antichrist_n perish_v &_o be_v discomfit_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o he_o be_v abolish_v by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n all_o king_n and_o all_o the_o earth_n can_v do_v nothing_o against_o this_o determination_n but_o i_o beseech_v the_o almighty_a that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o inspire_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o king_n and_o people_n a_o true_a desire_n of_o know_v the_o truth_n &_o to_o search_v for_o their_o salvation_n a_o true_a zeal_n to_o bring_v christendom_n again_o to_o true_a unity_n under_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n a_o true_a aff●●●●_n on_o to_o reign_v and_o to_o live_v in_o he_o as_o they_o reign_v and_o live_v by_o he_o to_o the_o end_n that_o king_n be_v well_o obey_v of_o their_o people_n and_o the_o people_n well_o command_v of_o their_o king_n we_o may_v see_v in_o our_o day_n one_o only_a jesus_n christ_n acknowledge_v of_o all_o people_n &_o king_n to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o church_n the_o only_a mediator_n saviour_n and_o lawegiver_n amen_n conclusion_n the_o church_n be_v consider_v as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v or_o not_o to_o be_v see_v the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v see_v be_v the_o company_n of_o those_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o everlasting_a life_n in_o all_o time_n and_o place_n the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o be_v see_v be_v the_o company_n of_o those_o who_o be_v call_v thereinto_o and_o be_v consider_v according_a to_o certain_a time_n and_o place_n there_o be_v notwithstanding_o but_o one_o church_n but_o consider_v diverse_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v as_o the_o corn_n with_o the_o chasse_z in_o that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v as_o the_o corn_n thresh_v and_o fan_v this_o visible_a church_n be_v first_o without_o the_o law_n afterward_o under_o the_o law_n tie_v to_o one_o certain_a place_n &_o family_n now_o through_o grace_n it_o be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o world_n one_o place_n have_v no_o more_o privilege_n than_o a_o other_o whereof_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v universal_a the_o catholic_a church_n comprehend_v under_o it_o all_o assembly_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o region_n who_o we_o call_v church_n as_o we_o call_v part_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o sea_n distinguish_v they_o notwithstanding_o by_o their_o name_n as_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n of_o africa_n etc_n etc_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n yea_o though_o it_o be_v universal_a some_o be_v pure_a and_o some_o impure_a and_o of_o those_o that_o be_v impure_a some_o be_v more_o and_o some_o less_o impure_a the_o pure_a church_n be_v those_o in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v pure_o preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n due_o administer_v albeit_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o pure_a the_o one_o they_o call_v the_o sound_n and_o true_a church_n the_o other_o but_o unproper_o catholic_a church_n the_o impure_a be_v those_o in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sacrament_n be_v ill_o administer_v whatsoever_o other_o outward_a marcke_n they_o can_v pretend_v and_o because_o that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v faith_n and_o charity_n we_o call_v those_o that_o be_v impure_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n heretical_a church_n and_o those_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o unity_n which_o they_o do_v through_o lack_n of_o charity_n schismatical_a and_o some_o there_o be_v that_o be_v both_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o they_o that_o at_o this_o day_n cleave_v unto_o it_o for_o they_o maintain_v many_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o persecute_v and_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o desire_v reformation_n notwithstanding_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n remain_v there_o in_o some_o sort_n we_o deny_v they_o not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n as_o we_o call_v a_o man_n a_o man_n how_o sick_a or_o brainless_a soever_o he_o be_v to_o discern_v the_o pure_a church_n from_o the_o impure_a god_n have_v deliver_v we_o his_o word_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o be_v perfect_a &_o clear_a to_o salvation_n for_o it_o have_v for_o his_o author_n the_o most_o perfect_a father_n of_o light_n this_o be_v that_o therefore_o by_o which_o man_n ought_v to_o determine_v the_o controversy_n of_o this_o time_n &_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n as_o the_o common_a wealth_n according_a to_o the_o law_n abolish_n that_o which_o god_n have_v there_o forbid_v we_o hold_v that_o for_o forbid_a in_o his_o service_n which_o he_o have_v not_o ordain_v look_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v command_v and_o interpret_n his_o will_n by_o itself_o concern_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n the_o church_n which_o follow_v that_o will_n can_v err_v for_o that_o be_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n and_o follow_v that_o god_n guide_v they_o also_o by_o his_o spirit_n which_o enlighten_v they_o and_o be_v inseparable_o join_v thereto_o contrariwise_o the_o church_n which_o depart_v from_o it_o may_v and_o do_v err_v yea_o and_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n for_o that_o they_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n neither_o can_v they_o beast_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o god_n bestow_v it_o not_o but_o upon_o his_o sheep_n neither_o do_v he_o hold_v any_o for_o his_o sheep_n but_o those_o that_o hear_v his_o voice_n therefore_o the_o church_n follow_v man_n fantasy_n &_o not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v great_o err_v in_o all_o her_o particular_a state_n &_o time_n even_o until_o the_o crucifi_a of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v her_o own_o salvation_n as_o in_o our_o time_n we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v adore_v and_o worship_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v antichrist_n the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n &_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o head_n thereof_o give_v efficacy_n to_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o gospel_n through_o his_o spirit_n &_o by_o the_o self_n same_o assist_v all_o those_o that_o true_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o this_o be_v that_o wherein_o consist_v the_o administration_n or_o government_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o ministerial_a head_n no_o man_n may_v be_v it_o for_o the_o church_n by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n &_o none_o can_v exercise_v that_o ministry_n throughout_o the_o world_n but_o rather_o every_o pastor_n represent_v christ_n in_o his_o charge_n and_o in_o deed_n our_o saviour_n christ_n before_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n ordain_v none_o such_o neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o apostle_n exercise_v any_o such_o office_n &_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n never_o know_v of_o it_o wherefore_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o same_o church_n we_o hold_v that_o the_o papal_a see_v which_o under_o this_o false_a title_n exercise_v tyranny_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v antichrist_n the_o which_o without_o other_o proof_n and_o circumstance_n may_v be_v verify_v by_o his_o doctrine_n alone_o notwithstanding_o that_o this_o papal_a see_v place_v in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n neither_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o a_o pestilence_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v corrupt_v and_o infect_v all_o asmuch_o as_n it_o can_v and_o have_v utter_o choke_v it_o without_o the_o special_a mercy_n of_o god._n we_o do_v therefore_o depart_v from_o the_o papacy_n and_o not_o from_o the_o church_n from_o idol_n and_o not_o from_o the_o temple_n from_o tyranme_n and_o not_o from_o the_o common_a wealth_n from_o the_o plague_n and_o not_o from_o the_o city_n be_v ready_a entire_o to_o knit_v and_o join_v ourselves_o again_o when_o antichrist_n &_o the_o evil_a which_o he_o have_v bring_v in_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o in_o wait_v for_o this_o we_o reform_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o as_o nigh_o as_o we_o can_v his_o service_n according_a to_o his_o institution_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n excommunicate_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o to_o